Selected quad for the lemma: blood_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
blood_n body_n bread_n consecration_n 9,959 5 11.0641 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A00728 Of the Church fiue bookes. By Richard Field Doctor of Diuinity and sometimes Deane of Glocester. Field, Richard, 1561-1616.; Field, Nathaniel, 1598 or 9-1666. 1628 (1628) STC 10858; ESTC S121344 1,446,859 942

There are 42 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o christian_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n constantinople_n alexandria_n antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n and_o among_o these_o they_o yield_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n and_o dignity_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o in_o all_o counsel_n and_o meeting_n he_o be_v to_o have_v the_o first_o place_n in_o sit_v or_o give_v voice_n in_o subscribe_v or_o define_v and_o determine_v thing_n concern_v the_o faith_n and_o state_n of_o the_o church_n but_o not_o any_o power_n or_o command_a authority_n over_o they_o we_o say_v marcus_n ephesinus_n think_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o five_o patriarch_n if_o he_o be_v orthodox_n but_o they_o that_o meet_v in_o the_o florentine_a council_n and_o subscribe_v to_o the_o union_n there_o make_v do_v teach_v that_o he_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n the_o father_n and_o teacher_n of_o all_o christian_n second_o in_o the_o minister_a of_o baptism_n they_o differ_v much_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o first_o the_o word_n of_o form_n with_o they_o be_v let_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o i_o baptize_v thou_o as_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n 2_o they_o dip_v the_o baptize_v thrice_o in_o the_o water_n whereas_o many_o among_o the_o latin_n do_v only_o pour_v water_n upon_o the_o top_n of_o the_o head_n 3_o they_o use_v not_o salt_n spittle_n and_o the_o like_a as_o the_o latino_n do_v 4_o l_o they_o 524._o anoint_v they_o with_o chrism_n or_o holy_a oil_n in_o the_o forehead_n so_o as_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n they_o be_v anoint_a in_o confirmation_n and_o in_o some_o other_o part_n also_o say_v sigillum_fw-la &_o obsignatio_fw-la donispiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la that_o be_v the_o seal_n and_o obsignation_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o use_v no_o other_o confirmation_n whereas_o the_o latin_n make_v it_o a_o sacrament_n to_o be_v minister_v by_o none_o but_o a_o bishop_n 5_o according_a to_o the_o old_a custom_n use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n to_o child_n when_o they_o baptize_v they_o 3_o they_o differ_v much_o more_o from_o the_o latin_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o first_o they_o use_v leaven_v bread_n and_o some_o of_o they_o proceed_v so_o far_o as_o that_o they_o think_v it_o no_o sacrament_n if_o it_o be_v minister_v in_o unleavened_a bread_n 2_o they_o consecrate_v one_o loaf_n which_o they_o divide_v into_o many_o part_n and_o give_v to_o the_o communicant_n 3_o they_o keep_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n cover_v until_o they_o come_v to_o bless_v and_o then_o draw_v aside_o the_o curtain_n they_o bring_v they_o into_o sight_n and_o lift_v they_o up_o from_o the_o mystical_a table_n that_o the_o people_n may_v see_v what_o heavenly_a food_n be_v prepare_v for_o they_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n with_o they_o serve_v the_o elevation_n 4_o they_o think_v the_o consecration_n be_v make_v by_o the_o prayer_n and_o blessing_n and_o that_o the_o recite_v of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n serve_v only_o to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n what_o be_v then_o do_v when_o he_o first_o institute_v this_o sacrament_n and_o to_o give_v a_o power_n or_o aptness_n to_o the_o sacramental_a element_n to_o be_v change_v mystical_o into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n whereas_o the_o latin_n think_v the_o bare_a recital_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v work_v the_o consecration_n 5_o they_o pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n aloud_o that_o all_o may_v hear_v and_o understand_v the_o latin_n so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o hear_v 6_o they_o give_v the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o communicant_n the_o latin_n put_v it_o in_o their_o mouth_n 7_o they_o condemn_v private_a mass_n as_o appear_v by_o marcus_n ephesinus_n who_o say_v the_o priest_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n eat_v all_o and_o drink_v all_o himself_o give_v no_o part_n to_o any_o that_o be_v present_a no_o not_o to_o the_o deacon_n that_o assist_v he_o and_o yet_o cry_v aloud_o take_v and_o eat_v so_o do_v they_o many_o thing_n say_v he_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o holy_a mystery_n contrary_a to_o the_o tradition_n receive_v from_o the_o father_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o contrary_a to_o themselves_o and_o their_o own_o word_n 8_o they_o minister_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n to_o all_o communicant_n and_o think_v it_o necessary_a so_o to_o do_v the_o latin_n minister_v it_o only_o in_o one_o kind_n to_o the_o lie_v people_n and_o such_o priest_n and_o clergy_n man_n as_o consecrate_v not_o but_o be_v present_v only_o to_o communicate_v 9_o they_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v a_o conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o such_o as_o that_o be_v whereby_o the_o iron_n be_v turn_v into_o fire_n or_o rather_o into_o a_o fiery_a nature_n &_o be_v whence_o it_o become_v burn_a iron_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o abolish_n of_o the_o substance_n but_o such_o a_o change_n that_o it_o be_v no_o long_o mere_o iron_n but_o the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o fire_n appear_v in_o it_o rather_o than_o of_o iron_n so_o that_o as_o iron_n be_v turn_v into_o fire_n not_o by_o a_o absolute_a cease_n to_o be_v or_o lose_v of_o former_a property_n but_o by_o a_o suspension_n of_o they_o for_o a_o time_n so_o that_o they_o appear_v not_o and_o by_o become_v one_o in_o such_o sort_n with_o the_o fire_n that_o it_o have_v all_o the_o property_n and_o action_n of_o it_o so_o the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o by_o a_o absolute_a cease_n to_o be_v but_o by_o become_v one_o in_o such_o sort_n with_o christ_n body_n through_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n descend_v and_o come_v down_o upon_o it_o as_o that_o the_o communicate_v in_o the_o one_o be_v the_o partake_n in_o the_o other_o and_o a_o impart_v of_o all_o such_o grace_n as_o may_v or_o do_v flow_v from_o any_o union_n with_o the_o same_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n say_v 14._o damascen_n be_v so_o change_v into_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n descend_v and_o come_v down_o upon_o they_o as_o that_o they_o be_v no_o long_o two_o but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o as_o the_o coal_n be_v no_o long_o mere_a wood_n or_o iron_n but_o so_o unite_v to_o the_o fire_n that_o it_o be_v become_v one_o with_o it_o so_o the_o bread_n wherein_o we_o communicate_v be_v no_o long_o mere_a bread_n but_o unite_v unto_o the_o deity_n he_o do_v not_o say_v the_o bread_n cease_v to_o be_v or_o be_v abolish_v but_o that_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v that_o it_o be_v mere_a bread_n what_o kind_n of_o conversion_n this_o be_v we_o may_v learn_v out_o of_o 525._o cyrill_n vosuncti_fw-la estis_fw-la say_v he_o unguento_fw-it facti_fw-la participes_fw-la &_o consortes_fw-la christi_fw-la caeterum_fw-la vide_fw-la ne_fw-la illud_fw-la pute_fw-la unguentum_fw-la tantum_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la enim_fw-la panis_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la post_fw-la sancti_fw-la spiritus_fw-la invocationem_fw-la non_fw-la amplius_fw-la est_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sed_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sic_fw-la sanctum_fw-la hoc_fw-la unguentum_fw-la non_fw-la amplius_fw-la est_fw-la unguentum_fw-la nudum_fw-la post_fw-la invocationem_fw-la neque_fw-la siquis_fw-la it_o a_o malit_fw-la appellare_fw-la common_a sed_fw-la donum_fw-la christi_fw-la here_o we_o see_v he_o make_v the_o consecrate_a and_o holy_a ointment_n to_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o to_o cease_v to_o be_v mere_a oil_n or_o ointment_n as_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v cease_v to_o be_v mere_a bread_n whereas_o yet_o no_o man_n imagine_v any_o such_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o oil_n or_o holy_a ointment_n as_o to_o abolish_v the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o it_o but_o that_o the_o grecke_n never_o dream_v of_o any_o such_o conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o shall_v utter_o abolish_v the_o former_a substance_n it_o be_v evident_a by_o confus_fw-la theodoret_n in_o his_o dialogue_n for_o whereas_o the_o eutichian_a heretic_n object_n that_o as_o the_o outward_a sign_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v change_v after_o they_o be_v consecrate_v so_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n after_o it_o be_v assume_v be_v change_v into_o the_o divine_a substance_n the_o orthodox_n and_o right_a believer_n answer_v that_o he_o be_v take_v in_o that_o snare_n which_o he_o lay_v for_o other_o for_o the_o mystical_a sign_n do_v not_o change_v their_o nature_n after_o consecration_n but_o remain_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o
and_o grace_n through_o the_o same_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n this_o form_n of_o prayer_n we_o find_v to_o have_v be_v very_o ancient_a but_o what_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a to_o find_v out_o for_o how_o may_v we_o be_v understand_v to_o desire_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o represent_v unto_o god_n in_o this_o commemorative_a sacrifice_n shall_v be_v carry_v into_o heaven_n see_v it_o be_v always_o there_o wherefore_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v say_v to_o this_o purpose_n quis_fw-la fidelium_fw-la haberet_fw-la dubium_fw-la say_v saint_n gregory_n in_o ipsâ_fw-la immolationis_fw-la hora_fw-la ad_fw-la vocem_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la coelos_fw-la aperiri_fw-la in_fw-la illo_fw-la jesu_fw-la cristi_n mysterio_fw-la angelorum_fw-la choros_fw-la adesse_fw-la summis_fw-la in_o a_o sociari_fw-la terrena_fw-la coelestibus_fw-la iungi_fw-la unum_fw-la quid_fw-la ex_fw-la visibilibus_fw-la &_o invisibilibus_fw-la fieri_fw-la that_o be_v what_o faithful_a man_n or_o believer_n will_v ever_o make_v any_o doubt_n but_o that_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o the_o oblation_n the_o heaven_n be_v open_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v hear_v quire_n of_o angel_n be_v present_a the_o low_a and_o high_a thing_n enter_v into_o a_o society_n earthly_a thing_n be_v join_v with_o those_o that_o be_v celestial_a and_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a become_v one_o and_o in_o another_o place_n at_o one_o and_o the_o same_o time_n and_o moment_n that_o which_o be_v present_v on_o the_o altar_n be_v catch_v up_o into_o heaven_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n to_o be_v join_v in_o a_o near_a sort_n unto_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o priest_n upon_o the_o altar_n so_o then_o the_o oblation_n which_o we_o present_v unto_o god_n on_o the_o altar_n be_v then_o carry_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o angel_n into_o heaven_n when_o those_o sacramental_a element_n which_o we_o bring_v thither_o though_o they_o be_v still_o visible_a on_o the_o altar_n as_o gregory_n say_v yet_o be_v change_v and_o become_v unto_o we_o in_o mystery_n and_o exhibitive_a signification_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n once_o sacrifice_v and_o shed_v for_o we_o and_o now_o in_o heaven_n continual_o represent_v unto_o god_n to_o intercede_v for_o we_o may_v right_o be_v say_v to_o be_v carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n but_o see_v by_o the_o precedent_a word_n of_o mystical_a blessing_n and_o prayer_n the_o sacramental_a element_n be_v so_o change_v before_o the_o pronounce_v of_o this_o prayer_n that_o they_o be_v already_o become_v in_o sort_n before_o express_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n we_o do_v not_o in_o these_o word_n desire_v any_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v but_o this_o be_v that_o we_o say_v lord_n we_o here_o commemorate_v the_o death_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o thy_o son_n christ_n that_o once_o die_v for_o we_o and_o now_o continual_o represent_v the_o same_o his_o death_n unto_o thou_o to_o procure_v we_o good_a humble_o beseech_v thou_o that_o for_o his_o sake_n thus_o die_v for_o we_o &_o now_o continual_o in_o heaven_n represent_v himself_o unto_o thou_o &_o set_v the_o same_o his_o passion_n and_o suffering_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o thy_o divine_a majesty_n as_o if_o even_o now_o he_o do_v hang_v on_o the_o cross_n all_o evil_a may_v be_v far_o remove_v from_o we_o &_o all_o good_a bring_v upon_o us._n and_o that_o all_o we_o that_o by_o communicate_v in_o these_o holy_a mystery_n receive_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o the_o same_o thy_o son_n christ_n may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o heavenly_a benediction_n and_o grace_n so_o that_o to_o command_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n once_o offer_v &_o here_o by_o we_o commemorate_a to_o be_v carry_v into_o heaven_n and_o to_o be_v represent_v unto_o god_n be_v no_o more_o but_o to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o that_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o once_o offer_v by_o the_o passion_n of_o death_n and_o which_o we_o now_o commemorate_v be_v in_o heaven_n there_o so_o represent_v unto_o god_n that_o it_o procure_v for_o we_o all_o that_o we_o desire_v there_o be_v nothing_o therefore_o find_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n right_o understand_v that_o make_v any_o thing_n for_o the_o new_a real_a offering_n of_o christ_n to_o god_n his_o father_n as_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n to_o take_v away_o sin_n neither_o do_v the_o church_n of_o god_n at_o &_o before_o luther_n time_n know_v or_o believe_v any_o such_o thing_n though_o there_o be_v some_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o she_o that_o so_o conceive_a of_o this_o mystery_n as_o the_o romanist_n now_o do_v wherefore_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o point_n i_o will_v first_o set_v down_o what_o the_o conceit_n of_o the_o romanist_n now_o be_v &_o then_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o all_o the_o best_a learned_a at_o and_o before_o luther_n time_n think_v otherwise_o touch_v this_o matter_n then_o these_o now_o do_v these_o that_o now_o be_v express_v their_o conceit_n touch_v this_o point_n in_o this_o sort_n first_o they_o show_v what_o a_o oblation_n be_v second_o what_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n be_v and_o three_o how_o and_o in_o what_o sort_n they_o imagine_v christ_n be_v now_o new_o &_o real_o not_o offer_v only_o but_o sacrifice_v also_o to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n a_o oblation_n they_o right_o define_v to_o be_v the_o bring_n of_o some_o thing_n that_o we_o have_v into_o the_o place_n where_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v call_v on_o and_o where_o his_o honour_n dwell_v a_o represent_v of_o it_o there_o unto_o god_n a_o profess_v that_o we_o will_v own_v it_o no_o long_o but_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v the_o owner_n of_o it_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v holy_a unto_o he_o to_o be_v employ_v about_o his_o service_n if_o it_o be_v a_o irrational_a thing_n or_o to_o serve_v he_o in_o some_o special_a sort_n if_o it_o be_v rational_a as_o when_o parent_n present_v and_o offer_v their_o child_n to_o god_n to_o be_v holy_a unto_o he_o as_o be_v the_o nazarit_n who_o be_v to_o serve_v he_o in_o some_o peculiar_a and_o special_a sort_n and_o in_o this_o sort_n christ_n present_v and_o give_v himself_o to_o god_n his_o father_n from_o his_o first_o entrance_n into_o this_o world_n and_o be_v holy_a unto_o he_o and_o a_o oblation_n but_o in_o this_o sort_n it_o be_v not_o for_o we_o to_o offer_v christ_n to_o god_n his_o father_n whatsoever_o any_o papist_n may_v imagine_v for_o it_o be_v a_o woeful_a thing_n for_o we_o so_o to_o give_v up_o christ_n to_o his_o father_n as_o to_o profess_v that_o we_o will_v own_v he_o no_o long_o nor_o have_v any_o interest_n in_o he_o nor_o claim_v to_o he_o any_o more_o and_o beside_o if_o it_o be_v fit_a for_o we_o so_o to_o do_v yet_o who_o be_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v present_v christ_n unto_o god_n his_o father_n to_o be_v holy_a unto_o he_o that_o so_o present_v and_o give_v himself_o unto_o he_o from_o his_o first_o entrance_n into_o the_o world_n that_o he_o bring_v we_o also_o to_o god_n to_o be_v holy_a unto_o he_o a_o sacrifice_n imply_v more_o than_o a_o oblation_n for_o if_o we_o will_v sacrifice_v a_o thing_n unto_o god_n we_o must_v not_o only_o present_v it_o unto_o he_o profess_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v he_o and_o that_o we_o will_v own_v it_o no_o more_o nor_o make_v any_o claim_n unto_o it_o but_o we_o must_v destroy_v and_o consume_v it_o also_o as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o old_a law_n when_o live_a thing_n be_v sacrifice_v they_o be_v slay_v and_o consume_v in_o fire_n when_o other_o that_o have_v no_o life_n be_v sacrifice_v they_o be_v consume_v in_o fire_n and_o answerable_o hereunto_o christ_n be_v sacrifice_v on_o the_o cross_n when_o he_o be_v crucify_v and_o cruel_o put_v to_o death_n by_o the_o jew_n but_o how_o he_o shall_v now_o be_v real_o sacrifice_v sacrifice_v imply_v in_o it_o a_o destruction_n of_o the_o thing_n sacrifice_v it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o conceive_v first_o therefore_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v real_o sacrifice_v because_o when_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v pronounce_v over_o the_o bread_n they_o so_o cause_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v where_o the_o bread_n be_v that_o they_o cause_v not_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o blood_n and_o in_o like_a sort_n the_o word_n pronounce_v over_o the_o wine_n cause_n the_o presence_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o not_o of_o his_o body_n so_o that_o upon_o the_o pronounce_v of_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n there_o will_v be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n without_o the_o
substance_n figure_n and_o shape_n and_o be_v visible_a and_o may_v be_v handle_v as_o before_o but_o they_o be_v conceive_v and_o believe_v to_o be_v that_o which_o now_o they_o be_v make_v and_o be_v adore_v as_o be_v that_o which_o they_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v here_o we_o see_v be_v no_o such_o change_n of_o the_o mystical_a sign_n as_o to_o abolish_v their_o substance_n and_o former_a be_v for_o then_o the_o conversion_n in_o the_o sacrament_n have_v be_v such_o as_o the_o heretic_n imagine_v it_o to_o be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n assume_v and_o so_o theodoret_n can_v not_o true_o have_v say_v he_o be_v take_v in_o the_o snare_n which_o he_o lay_v for_o other_o wherefore_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n the_o crecian_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v a_o conversion_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n but_o of_o that_o kind_n which_o i_o have_v before_o show_v that_o abolish_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v but_o make_v they_o to_o be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o which_o may_v farther_o appear_v in_o that_o they_o say_v likewise_o there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o communicant_n into_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n and_o make_v the_o end_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o transubstantiation_n into_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o make_n of_o they_o that_o communicate_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n who_o say_v we_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o our_o former_a be_v abolish_v but_o we_o be_v make_v to_o be_v that_o which_o we_o be_v not_o in_o a_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a sort_n according_a to_o that_o of_o 14._o damascen_n let_v we_o come_v and_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o he_o that_o be_v crucify_v let_v we_o partake_v of_o that_o divine_a burn_a coal_n that_o the_o fire_n of_o desire_n be_v kindle_v in_o we_o by_o that_o coal_n may_v burn_v up_o our_o sin_n and_o lighten_v our_o heart_n and_o that_o be_v change_v into_o that_o divine_a fire_n we_o may_v become_v fire_n and_o be_v in_o a_o sort_n deify_v and_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n all_o which_o change_v neither_o abolish_v nor_o confound_v substance_n for_o as_o mind_n cyprian_n say_v well_o nostra_fw-la &_o ipsius_fw-la contunctio_fw-la nec_fw-la miscet_fw-la personas_fw-la nec_fw-la unit_fw-la substantias_fw-la sed_fw-la affectus_fw-la consociat_fw-la &_o confaederat_a voluntates_fw-la that_o be_v the_o union_n and_o conjunction_n that_o be_v betwixt_o christ_n and_o we_o neither_o cause_v any_o mixture_n of_o the_o person_n nor_o make_v they_o to_o be_v substantial_o the_o same_o but_o join_v affection_n and_o confederate_v the_o will_n last_o touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n boby_a and_o blood_n they_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o conceive_v what_o they_o mean_v they_o lie_v down_o these_o proposition_n first_o that_o under_o the_o law_n two_o sort_n of_o thing_n be_v present_v unto_o god_n gift_n and_o sacrifice_n gift_n as_o vessel_n of_o gold_n or_o silver_n and_o thing_n of_o like_a nature_n which_o be_v dedicate_v unto_o god_n and_o set_v apart_o from_o profane_a and_o ordinary_a use_n sacrifice_n as_o sheep_n ox_n and_o the_o like_a thing_n when_o they_o be_v slay_v and_o their_o blood_n pour_v out_o and_o general_o all_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v consume_v in_o the_o fire_n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v both_o a_o gift_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o he_o be_v dedicate_v to_o god_n from_o his_o first_o entrance_n into_o the_o world_n as_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o our_o nature_n &_o as_o the_o first_o bear_v of_o mary_n his_o mother_n and_o afterward_o he_o become_v a_o sacrifice_n when_o he_o be_v crucify_v the_o three_o that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v present_v unto_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o gift_n before_o they_o be_v consecrate_v the_o four_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v and_o so_o change_v as_o to_o become_v the_o sacrifice_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n the_o five_o that_o it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o oblation_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o a_o sacrifice_n also_o in_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v once_o sacrifice_v be_v there_o the_o six_o that_o the_o bread_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v for_o then_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n shall_v not_o excel_v those_o of_o the_o old_a the_o seven_o that_o in_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o a_o live_a thing_n the_o kill_n of_o it_o be_v imply_v the_o eight_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v in_o the_o eucharist_n because_o he_o can_v die_v no_o more_o but_o be_v immortal_a and_o impassable_a the_o nine_o that_o christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v new_o sacrifice_v and_o slay_v commemorative_o in_o that_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o he_o on_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n be_v there_o commemorate_a &_o lively_o express_v and_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o communicate_v to_o they_o that_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o those_o holy_a mystery_n according_a to_o that_o of_o 10._o lyra_n si_fw-la dicas_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la altaris_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la offertur_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la dicendum_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ibi_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la reiteratio_fw-la sed_fw-la unius_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la in_o cruse_n oblati_fw-la quotidiana_fw-la commemoratio_fw-la secundum_fw-la illud_fw-la lucae_n 22._o hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la in_o meam_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la that_o be_v if_o thou_o say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v daily_o offer_v the_o answer_n be_v clear_a and_o easy_a that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o new_o sacrifice_v on_o the_o altar_n but_o whereas_o christ_n once_o offer_v himself_o as_o a_o sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n the_o same_o be_v daily_o commemorate_a according_a to_o that_o luk._n 22_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o therefore_o chrysostome_n write_v upon_o the_o 10._o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n have_v name_v it_o a_o sacrifice_n add_v by_o way_n of_o explication_n or_o correction_n that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n or_o rather_o the_o commemoration_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n so_o that_o herein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o romanist_n who_o teach_v that_o there_o be_v a_o new_a real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ._n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n they_o do_v not_o so_o clear_o express_v themselves_o as_o s._n augustine_n &_o other_o that_o follow_v he_o for_o they_o teach_v that_o we_o must_v first_o will_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v right_a and_o good_a and_o that_o god_n then_o help_v confirm_v and_o set_v we_o forward_o so_o that_o they_o suppose_v he_o follow_v our_o will_n and_o go_v not_o before_o they_o lest_o the_o liberty_n thereof_o may_v be_v prejudice_v their_o meaning_n i_o think_v be_v that_o no_o good_a can_v be_v wrought_v in_o we_o without_o our_o consent_n which_o s._n augustine_n also_o confess_v to_o be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v god_n grace_n that_o win_v incline_v and_o bow_v we_o to_o consent_v to_o that_o good_a which_o itself_o suggest_v in_o which_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v to_o go_v before_o our_o will_n and_o yet_o not_o to_o prejudice_v our_o liberty_n if_o they_o speak_v not_o so_o distinct_o touch_v this_o point_n as_o some_o other_o do_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvail_v at_o see_v the_o greek_a father_n be_v not_o so_o clear_a in_o this_o point_n as_o the_o latin_n be_v whereupon_o aloisius_n lippomannus_n in_o catena_fw-la aurea_fw-la in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n have_v these_o word_n i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o admonish_v thou_o that_o if_o in_o this_o whole_a work_n thou_o shall_v any_o where_o find_v any_o such_o say_n of_o chrysostome_n as_o that_o when_o man_n endeavour_v and_o do_v that_o which_o pertain_v to_o he_o god_n will_v abundant_o give_v grace_n thou_o wise_o and_o wary_o read_v that_o holy_a doctor_n lest_o thou_o fall_v into_o any_o such_o error_n as_o to_o believe_v that_o god_n grace_n be_v give_v for_o our_o merit_n for_o if_o out_o of_o merit_n it_o be_v not_o grace_n but_o far_o be_v it_o from_o we_o so_o to_o think_v see_v we_o can_v so_o much_o as_o endeavour_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o pertain_v to_o we_o without_o god_n grace_n prevent_v us._n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o psalm_n his_o mercy_n shall_v prevent_v i_o and_o again_o his_o mercy_n shall_v follow_v i_o all_o the_o day_n of_o my_o life_n and_o that_o of_o holy_a church_n let_v thy_o grace_n o_o lord_n we_o beseech_v thou_o prevent_v and_o follow_v us._n six_o touch_v justification_n they_o lie_v down_o these_o proposition_n the_o first_o that_o we_o
their_o own_o ascension_n and_o go_v up_o into_o heaven_n for_o though_o when_o one_o substance_n be_v turn_v into_o another_o not_o be_v before_o the_o conversion_n but_o by_o the_o conversion_n beginning_n to_o be_v that_o into_o which_o the_o conversion_n be_v make_v occupy_v and_o possess_v the_o place_n the_o other_o hold_v as_o when_o lot_n wife_n be_v convert_v into_o a_o pillar_n of_o salt_n the_o pillar_n stand_v in_o that_o place_n where_o she_o be_v when_o she_o be_v convert_v yet_o if_o one_o substance_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o another_o preexistent_n the_o convert_v shall_v get_v the_o place_n of_o that_o into_o which_o it_o be_v convert_v so_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n on_o the_o mystical_a table_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n sit_v in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n shall_v go_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o not_o bring_v he_o to_o the_o table_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a reason_n that_o move_v the_o author_n of_o transubstantiation_n to_o like_o better_a of_o that_o than_o of_o any_o other_o construction_n of_o christ_n word_n for_o that_o they_o suppose_v thereby_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v make_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n without_o any_o change_n of_o place_n or_o local_a motion_n in_o respect_n of_o itself_o which_o yet_o 1._o scotus_n 6._o occam_n and_o the_o latter_a schoolman_n do_v utter_o reject_v so_o sweet_o do_v these_o man_n agree_v that_o talk_v so_o much_o of_o unity_n very_o i_o be_o persuade_v there_o be_v more_o material_a and_o real_a difference_n among_o they_o touch_v this_o one_o sacrament_n than_o there_o be_v appear_v difference_n or_o controversy_n among_o those_o of_o our_o religion_n touch_v all_o point_n of_o religion_n 6._o for_o be_v it_o not_o so_o that_o there_o be_v four_o opinion_n touch_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o three_o of_o they_o different_a from_o transubstantiation_n so_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o lateran_n council_n many_o of_o the_o wise_a and_o best_a learned_a be_v of_o opinion_n that_o transubstantiation_n can_v be_v deduce_v from_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o church_n determination_n did._n not_o 1._o thomas_n aquinas_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o time_n deny_v that_o one_o body_n may_v be_v local_o in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o at_o one_o time_n and_o reject_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n impossible_a and_o imply_v contradiction_n and_o do_v not_o the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n judge_v we_o heretic_n for_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n do_v atter●…_n they_o not_o in_o berengarius_fw-la time_n think_v that_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v tear_v with_o tooth_n and_o yet_o without_o hurt_n by_o a_o strange_a miracle_n and_o be_v not_o berengarius_fw-la in_o his_o recantation_n force_v to_o say_v so_o much_o yet_o at_o this_o day_n this_o conceit_n be_v hold_v most_o absurd_a and_o foolish_a do_v not_o some_o of_o they_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n go_v down_o into_o the_o stomach_n and_o belly_n and_o be_v eat_v of_o mouse_n and_o dog_n and_o do_v not_o other_o detest_v this_o blasphemous_a impiety_n do_v not_o some_o of_o they_o say_v there_o be_v accident_n in_o the_o sacrament_n without_o substance_n and_o do_v not_o other_o affirm_v that_o those_o accident_n be_v inherent_a in_o the_o air_n do_v not_o some_o of_o they_o say_v that_o when_o the_o priest_n break_v that_o which_o he_o hold_v in_o his_o hand_n after_o consecration_n it_o be_v no_o true_a break_n but_o a_o deceive_n of_o the_o sense_n other_o that_o he_o true_o break_v and_o yet_o nothing_o be_v break_v other_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v break_v and_o other_o that_o the_o accident_n be_v break_v such_o a_o break_a religion_n have_v these_o man_n devise_v that_o neither_o the_o father_n nor_o any_o before_o barbarism_n have_v possess_v all_o ever_o think_v of_o 5._o do_v not_o some_o of_o they_o say_v that_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n retain_v his_o own_o proportion_n of_o part_n figure_n and_o fashion_n and_o do_v not_o other_o say_v and_o demonstrative_o prove_v that_o if_o he_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o have_v no_o distance_n of_o part_n no_o figure_n no_o fashion_n nor_o organical_a disposition_n of_o body_n and_o consequent_o no_o life_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o infinite_a maze_n that_o these_o man_n turn_v out_o of_o the_o direct_a way_n have_v lose_v themselves_o in_o i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n to_o tread_v out_o but_o those_o few_o example_n may_v suffice_v to_o show_v that_o their_o whole_a doctrine_n be_v full_a of_o uncertainty_n contrariety_n and_o contradiction_n and_o do_v testify_v against_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v not_o of_o god_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v that_o all_o popish_a doctrine_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mass_n of_o uncertainty_n and_o contradiction_n show_v that_o they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n that_o pro●…esse_v it_o and_o know_v not_o how_o to_o find_v either_o it_o or_o themselves_o if_o any_o papist_n dare_n deny_v this_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v against_o he_o in_o particular_n but_o they_o will_v say_v notwithstanding_o all_o these_o difference_n yet_o they_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n and_o therefore_o their_o division_n be_v not_o dangerous_a nor_o heretical_a how_o false_a and_o shameless_a this_o answer_n be_v the_o ostendit_fw-la infinite_a number_n of_o they_o that_o have_v ever_o judge_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v and_o become_v a_o heretic_n do_v apparent_o demonstrate_v if_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o though_o they_o dare_v not_o rely_v upon_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n judgement_n yet_o they_o rest_v in_o the_o determination_n of_o general_a council_n it_o will_v be_v find_v that_o they_o be_v as_o doubtful_a touch_v the_o authority_n of_o council_n as_o they_o be_v concern_v the_o pope_n 2●…_n some_o say_n they_o be_v mere_a humane_a invention_n other_o that_o they_o be_v nothing_o if_o the_o pope_n confirm_v they_o not_o other_o that_o they_o be_v though_o he_o refuse_v to_o confirm_v they_o and_o other_o that_o both_o may_v err_v some_o reject_v one_o council_n and_o some_o another_o as_o appear_z by_o the_o contrary_a judgement_n of_o papist_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n basill_n pisa_n and_o florence_n but_o they_o will_v say_v they_o all_o hold_v that_o which_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n do_v hold_v and_o in_o other_o thing_n not_o yet_o agree_v upon_o think_v every_o man_n at_o his_o pleasure_n this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o wherein_o soever_o they_o all_o agree_v they_o all_o agree_v and_o wherein_o soever_o they_o differ_v each_o faction_n do_v differ_v from_o another_o and_o careful_o provide_v that_o nothing_o shall_v pass_v against_o it_o by_o public_a consent_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o mary_n conception_n &_o sundry_a other_o thing_n which_o no_o council_n dare_v ever_o determine_v for_o fear_v of_o offendinge_v the_o contrary_a faction_n dissent_v about_o these_o thing_n thus_o then_o i_o hope_v it_o appear_v out_o of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v that_o by_o the_o note_n of_o unity_n and_o division_n the_o romanistes_n be_v find_v to_o be_v in_o error_n and_o not_o we_o what_o degree_n of_o unity_n be_v necessary_o require_v in_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o what_o division_n may_v be_v find_v among_o the_o society_n of_o christian_n and_o yet_o not_o cause_v they_o to_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n i_o have_v sufficient_o clear_v in_o that_o part_n wherein_o i_o show_v what_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n chap._n 43_o of_o universality_n the_o next_o note_n of_o the_o church_n be_v universality_n concern_v which_o many_o thing_n have_v be_v speak_v in_o the_o former_a part_n touch_v the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n wherefore_o pass_v by_o those_o thing_n let_v we_o in_o this_o place_n observe_v only_o these_o few_o thing_n follow_v first_o therefore_o to_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v require_v that_o it_o extend_v to_o all_o time_n place_n and_o sort_n of_o man_n second_o this_o universality_n be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o one_o church_n limit_v either_o in_o respect_n of_o time_n or_o place_n three_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v no_o where_o find_v but_o in_o that_o bless_a number_n of_o christian_n that_o have_v be_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v four_o it_o can_v be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n that_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o man_n now_o live_v in_o the_o world_n as_o be_v find_v in_o it_o for_o that_o multitude_n be_v not_o universal_a but_o limit_v in_o respect_n of_o time_n be_v only_o the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o
not_o to_o affirm_v the_o same_o exceed_v bold_o &_o untrue_o of_o the_o time_n in_o which_o luther_n first_o begin_v which_o be_v yet_o within_o the_o memory_n of_o this_o present_a age_n other_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v then_o invisible_a direct_o against_o that_o which_o m._n d._n field_n next_o before_o so_o bold_o affirm_v into_o which_o bold_a assertion_n he_o venture_v only_o thereby_o to_o avoid_v the_o other_o absurd_a paradox_n of_o the_o suppose_a church_n be_v invisible_a which_o so_o many_o learned_a protestant_n have_v also_o disclaim_v heretofore_o as_o on_o the_o other_o part_n they_o who_o so_o affirm_v their_o church_n then_o be_v invisible_a affirm_v the_o same_o as_o enforce_v thereunto_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o know_v pregnant_a untrueth_n of_o m._n d._n field_n other_o assertion_n in_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v then_o know_v &_o visible_a upon_o such_o dangerous_a rock_n be_v our_o adversary_n drive_v in_o their_o thus_o sail_v between_o scylla_n &_o charybdis_n here_o we_o see_v be_v much_o ado_n as_o if_o some_o thing_n have_v be_v write_v by_o i_o that_o be_v beyond_o all_o belief_n and_o a_o very_a wonderment_n but_o what_o strange_a thing_n be_v it_o that_o be_v thus_o wonder_v at_o sure_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o i_o have_v affirm_v that_o all_o those_o christian_a catholic_a church_n in_o the_o west_n part_n of_o the_o world_n where_o the_o pope_n former_o tyranize_v and_o where_o our_o father_n live_v and_o die_v be_v the_o true_a protestant_a church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o maintainer_n of_o those_o error_n superstitious_a abuse_n &_o papal_a tyranny_n which_o we_o dislike_v be_v in_o that_o they_o maintain_v the_o same_o and_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o maintain_v any_o of_o they_o but_o a_o faction_n only_o in_o those_o church_n if_o this_o be_v all_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o so_o to_o make_v good_a what_o i_o have_v write_v that_o mr_n brerelie_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n wonder_n at_o himself_o why_o he_o contradict_v it_o for_o if_o by_o a_o protestant_a church_n we_o mean_v a_o church_n believe_v &_o teach_v in_o all_o point_n as_o protestant_n do_v and_o believe_v &_o teach_v nothing_o but_o that_o they_o do_v it_o shall_v be_v prove_v &_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o latin_a or_o west_n church_n wherein_o the_o pope_n tyrannize_v before_o luther_n time_n be_v &_o continue_v a_o true_a protestant_a church_n for_o the_o church_n that_o then_o be_v believe_v &_o teach_v all_o that_o we_o do_v and_o nothing_o else_o it_o condemn_v those_o profane_a &_o superstitious_a abuse_n which_o we_o have_v remove_v and_o groan_v under_o that_o tyranny_n the_o yoke_n whereof_o we_o have_v now_o cast_v off_o howsoever_o there_o be_v many_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o she_o that_o teach_v otherwise_o that_o bring_v in_o &_o maintain_v intolerable_a &_o superstitious_a abuse_n &_o seek_v to_o advance_v the_o pope_n overrule_a greatness_n and_o supremacy_n but_o if_o by_o a_o protestant_a church_n they_o understand_v a_o church_n that_o not_o only_o complain_v of_o papal_a tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n &_o show_v her_o dislike_n of_o the_o same_o but_o that_o have_v cast_v off_o the_o yoke_n and_o that_o not_o only_o dislike_v abuse_n but_o remove_v they_o &_o that_o not_o only_o teach_v all_o necessary_a &_o save_a truth_n but_o suffer_v none_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o her_o jurisdiction_n to_o teach_v otherwise_o we_o confess_v that_o no_o part_n of_o the_o western_a church_n be_v in_o this_o sort_n a_o protestant_a church_n till_o a_o reformation_n be_v begin_v of_o evil_n former_o dislike_v but_o m_n brerelie_o say_v protestancie_n be_v not_o in_o be_v before_o luther_n time_n &_o that_o therefore_o the_o christian_a catholic_a church_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v &_o die_v can_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v protestant_a church_n whereunto_o our_o answer_n be_v that_o ifby_o protestancie_n be_v mean_v the_o believe_v of_o all_o that_o and_o that_o only_a which_o they_o that_o be_v now_o name_v protestant_n do_v believe_v &_o the_o profess_v of_o a_o dislike_n of_o such_o abuse_n &_o papal_a usurpation_n as_o they_o have_v now_o cast_v off_o it_o be_v in_o be_v many_o age_n and_o long_o before_o luther_n be_v bear_v and_o all_o those_o christian_a catholic_a church_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v &_o die_v be_v protestant_n church_n but_o this_o master_n brerelie_o think_v unaunswerablie_o to_o confute_v because_o the_o mass_n where_o so_o many_o point_n of_o the_o romish_a religion_n be_v contain_v be_v the_o public_a liturgy_n solemn_o celebrate_v in_o all_o church_n at_o &_o before_o luther_n appear_v and_o the_o external_a face_n of_o religion_n be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o now_o profess_a roman_a faith_n for_o answer_v whereunto_o i_o will_v first_o show_v that_o the_o use_v of_o the_o mass_n as_o the_o public_a liturgy_n be_v no_o good_a proof_n of_o that_o master_n brere_o undertake_v to_o prove_v second_o i_o will_v make_v it_o to_o appear_v that_o the_o external_a face_n of_o religion_n before_o luther_n time_n be_v not_o as_o master_n brerelie_o will_v make_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o roman_a faith_n now_o profess_v touch_v the_o mass_n four_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v the_o name_n the_o canon_n itself_o the_o sinister_a consecration_n &_o manifold_a abuse_n in_o practice_n beside_o and_o contrary_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n &_o the_o intendment_n of_o they_o that_o first_o compose_v the_o same_o and_o last_o sundry_a apocryphal_a vain_a superstitious_a &_o idle_a thing_n creep_v into_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n touch_v the_o first_o it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n &_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n &_o blood_n have_v the_o name_n of_o mass_n from_o the_o dismiss_v of_o all_o non-communicants_a before_o the_o consecration_n begin_v so_o that_o none_o stay_v but_o such_o as_o be_v to_o communicate_v the_o ancient_a custom_n be_v say_v cassander_n in_o his_o consultation_n that_o none_o may_v be_v present_a at_o the_o consecration_n but_o such_o as_o be_v to_o communicate_v for_o as_o chrysostome_n show_v as_o they_o 213_o that_o be_v not_o baptize_v may_v not_o stay_v no_o more_o may_v they_o that_o be_v impure_a &_o guilty_a of_o any_o grievous_a sin_n so_o that_o they_o be_v not_o fit_v to_o communicate_v militis_fw-la and_o to_o this_o purpose_n be_v that_o most_o ancient_a observation_n of_o all_o church_n that_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o deacon_n missa_fw-la seu_fw-la missio_fw-la denunciabatur_fw-la catechumenis_fw-la &_o non_fw-la communicantibus_fw-la ante_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la that_o be_v that_o the_o catechuman_n &_o all_o non-communicants_a be_v dismiss_v before_o the_o consecration_n the_o deacon_n cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n si_fw-la quis_fw-la non_fw-la communicet_fw-la exeat_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la non_fw-la communicet_fw-la det_fw-la locum_fw-la if_o any_o communicate_v not_o let_v he_o depart_v so_o that_o hence_o it_o come_v that_o the_o name_n of_o mass_n be_v give_v to_o sundry_a part_n of_o the_o liturgy_n for_o whereas_o all_o may_v be_v present_a at_o some_o part_n of_o the_o divine_a service_n that_o part_n be_v call_v missa_fw-la catechumenorum_fw-la for_o that_o the_o catechuman_n may_v be_v present_a at_o it_o and_o it_o be_v end_v before_o their_o dismiss_v but_o the_o other_o part_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o consecration_n oblation_n &_o participation_n be_v call_v missa_fw-la fidelium_fw-la for_o that_o the_o faithful_a only_a who_o be_v fit_v to_o communicate_v may_v be_v present_a at_o it_o all_o non-communicants_a being_n first_o dismiss_v &_o send_v away_o this_o make_v against_o the_o present_a abuse_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n wherein_o all_o stay_n and_o yet_o none_o communicate_v but_o the_o priest_n alone_o &_o many_o be_v make_v believe_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o be_v present_a though_o they_o do_v not_o prepare_v themselves_o so_o as_o to_o be_v fit_n to_o communicate_v nay_o oftentimes_o such_o as_o will_v communicate_v be_v repel_v this_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o some_o in_o the_o church_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v but_o not_o without_o the_o dislike_n of_o the_o better_a sort_n and_o therefore_o as_o cassander_n tell_v we_o henricus_fw-la de_fw-fr gorrichem_n in_o tractatu_fw-la de_fw-la effectu_fw-la missae_fw-la propos_fw-fr 23_o reprehend_v certain_a pastor_n of_o his_o age_n who_o can_v hardly_o endure_v that_o some_o of_o their_o parishioner_n desire_v every_o sunday_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n though_o they_o live_v laudable_o and_o he_o add_v that_o see_v the_o same_o devotion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n when_o man_n communicate_v every_o day_n be_v still_o to_o be_v find_v in_o some_o the_o pastor_n shall_v not_o dislike_v it_o if_o any_o among_o the_o common_a people_n be_v so_o
illud_fw-la &_o singular_a sacrificium_fw-la offertur_fw-la veterem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la morem_fw-la revocare_fw-la quo_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la sacrificans_fw-la ipse_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o diaconi_fw-la &_o reliqui_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ministri_fw-la qui_fw-la diebus_fw-la solennioribus_fw-la velut_fw-la testes_fw-la tanti_fw-la sacrificii_fw-la &_o necessar●…run_v ministeriorum_fw-la coadiutores_fw-la adhibentur_fw-la ut_fw-la perceptionis_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la participes_fw-la se_fw-la preberent_fw-la seria_fw-la canonum_fw-la sanctione_n iubebautur_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o fideles_fw-la omnes_fw-la pro_fw-la recolendà_fw-la mortis_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o nostrae_fw-la redemptionis_fw-la memorià_fw-la ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la mediatoris_fw-la nostri_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la confluentes_fw-la sedulis_fw-la exhortationibus_fw-la monendi_fw-la &_o excitandi_fw-la sunt_fw-la ut_fw-la prius_fw-la explorati_fw-la confessi_fw-la &_o absoluti_fw-la sacrosanctae_fw-la communionis_fw-la gratiam_fw-la sumant_fw-la &_o divinissimae_fw-la eucharistiae_fw-la participationem_fw-la unà_fw-la cum_fw-la sacerdote_fw-la sedulo_fw-la &_o devotè_fw-la frequentent_fw-la that_o be_v and_o here_o true_o it_o be_v expedient_a that_o when_o that_o most_o true_a and_o singular_a sacrifice_n be_v offer_v we_o shall_v renew_v the_o old_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o not_o only_o he_o that_o celebrate_v but_o the_o deacon_n also_o and_o the_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n which_o on_o the_o more_o solemn_a day_n be_v use_v as_o witness_n of_o so_o solemn_a a_o act_n &_o as_o coadjutor_n in_o respect_n of_o sundry_a necessary_a ministery_n be_v command_v by_o a_o serious_a sanction_n of_o the_o canon_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n &_o blood_n but_o all_o such_o faithful_a &_o believe_a man_n as_o resort_v to_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o mediator_n to_o renew_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o our_o redemption_n by_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v admonish_v and_o stir_v up_o by_o effectual_a and_o often_o exhortation_n have_v examine_v themselves_o confess_v their_o sin_n and_o obtain_v absolution_n to_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n and_o careful_o and_o devout_o to_o frequent_v the_o participation_n of_o the_o divine_a eucharist_n together_o with_o the_o priest_n by_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o priest_n receive_v alone_o &_o neglect_v or_o exclude_v the_o communicate_v of_o other_o as_o not_o much_o necessary_a his_o act_n be_v available_a to_o apply_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n passion_n without_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n be_v indeed_o a_o point_n of_o romish_a religion_n but_o not_o contain_v in_o the_o mass_n for_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o name_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n &_o intendment_n of_o they_o that_o compose_v it_o contrary_a to_o the_o old_a canon_n &_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n it_o proceed_v from_o the_o indevotion_n of_o the_o people_n or_o rather_o the_o negligence_n or_o error_n of_o the_o guide_v of_o the_o church_n that_o either_o fail_v to_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o such_o a_o duty_n or_o make_v they_o believe_v their_o act_n be_v sufficient_a to_o communicate_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n passion_n to_o they_o not_o without_o the_o dislike_n of_o the_o better_a sort_n so_o that_o hitherto_o no_o proof_n be_v make_v that_o the_o church_n wherein_o our_o father_n live_v and_o die_v be_v no_o protestant_n church_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a for_o this_o church_n do_v ever_o protest_v against_o this_o abuse_n profess_v her_o dislike_n of_o the_o same_o &_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o custom_n be_v much_o different_a from_o the_o ancient_a honorius_n in_o gemma_fw-la animae_fw-la say_v it_o be_v report_v that_o ancient_o the_o priest_n be_v 58._o wont_a to_o receive_v meal_n of_o every_o house_n or_o family_n which_o custom_n the_o greek_n be_v say_v to_o continue_v still_o &_o that_o out_o of_o this_o they_o make_v the_o lord_n bread_n which_o they_o do_v offer_v for_o the_o people_n &_o have_v consecrate_v it_o distribute_v it_o to_o they_o for_o every_o of_o they_o that_o offer_v this_o meal_n be_v present_a at_o the_o mass_n &_o respective_o to_o they_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o canon_n &_o omnium_fw-la circumstantium_fw-la qui_fw-la tibi_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la laudis_fw-la offerunt_fw-la that_o be_v consider_v the_o devotion_n of_o all_o that_o stand_v round_o about_o who_o offer_v to_o thou_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n but_o after_o that_o the_o church_n increase_v in_o number_n but_o decay_v in_o devotion_n it_o be_v decree_v in_o respect_n of_o carnal_a man_n that_o they_o that_o can_v shall_v communicate_v every_o sunday_n or_o on_o the_o chief_a feast_n day_n or_o thrice_o in_o the_o year_n and_o now_o because_o the_o people_n cease_v to_o communicate_v so_o great_a a_o quantity_n of_o bread_n be_v no_o long_o necessary_a it_o be_v decree_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v form_v in_o fashion_n of_o a_o penny_n &_o instead_o of_o offer_v meal_n they_o offer_v every_o one_o a_o penny_n by_o which_o they_o acknowledge_v christ_n be_v sell_v for_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o penny_n these_o penny_n be_v convert_v either_o to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o poor_a or_o for_o provide_v of_o something_o pertain_v to_o the_o sacrifice_n &_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o receive_v there_o be_v give_v they_o holy_a bread_n as_o they_o call_v it_o whatsoever_o man_n think_v of_o this_o which_o honorius_n have_v of_o offer_v meal_n 53._o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o do_v offer_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v consecrate_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o the_o bread_n that_o be_v there_o consecrate_v be_v usual_a and_o loafie_a bread_n and_o in_o form_n 〈◊〉_d round_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o 492._o epiphanius_n in_o ancoratu_n &_o 55._o gregory_n in_o his_o dialogue_n who_o call_v the_o bread_n of_o consecration_n corona_n round_a ●…aves_n all_o which_o thing_n show_v a_o protestant_a church_n wherefore_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o next_o point_n of_o romish_a religion_n suppose_v to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v the_o deprive_v of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o give_v they_o the_o same_o only_a in_o one_o kind_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n say_v ●_o lyra_n the_o sacrament_n be_v minister_v in_o both_o kind_n 9_o dionysius_n carthusianus_n agree_v with_o he_o affirm_v the_o same_o which_o thing_n may_v 11._o be_v prove_v by_o innumerable_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n philadelph_n ignatius_n say_v there_o be_v one_o bread_n break_v to_o all_o &_o one_o cup_n distribute_v to_o all_o after_o the_o offering_n be_v make_v let_v every_o one_o say_v clement_n in_o order_n take_v the_o lord_n body_n and_o his_o precious_a blood_n with_o all_o reverend_a shamefastness_n &_o fear_n the_o bread_n say_v dionysius_n which_o 61._o be_v one_o be_v break_v in_o part_n &_o the_o cup_n that_o be_v but_o one_o be_v divide_v among_o al._n justin_n 3._o martyr_n in_o his_o 2_o apology_n say_v that_o after_o he_o that_o be_v the_o precedent_n have_v finish_v his_o thanksgiving_n &_o the_o people_n by_o a_o joyful_a acclamation_n have_v approve_v &_o consent_v to_o the_o same_o the_o deacons_n &_o minister_n divide_v unto_o every_o one_o of_o they_o that_o be_v present_a that_o each_o one_o may_v partake_v of_o that_o bread_n wine_n &_o water_n over_o which_o the_o blessing_n &_o thanksgiving_n have_v be_v pour_v out_o and_o they_o do_v bear_v the_o same_o to_o they_o that_o be_v absent_a of_o who_o hand_n say_v ●…6_n tertullian_n speak_v of_o a_o faithful_a woman_n marry_v to_o a_o infidel_n shall_v she_o receive_v &_o of_o who_o cup_n shall_v she_o partake_v ●…4_n cyprian_n in_o his_o epist._n to_o cornelius_n how_o do_v we_o teach_v or_o provoke_v they_o in_o &_o for_o the_o confession_n of_o christ_n name_n to_o shed_v their_o blood_n if_o we_o deny_v unto_o they_o when_o they_o be_v to_o enter_v into_o this_o warfare_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n or_o how_o shall_v we_o make_v they_o fit_a for_o the_o cup_n of_o martyrdom_n if_o we_o shall_v not_o first_o admit_v they_o to_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n jure_fw-la communicationis_fw-la by_o the_o right_n of_o communicate_v &_o in_o another_o place_n therefore_o they_o daily_a drink_n the_o cup_n of_o christ_n blood_n that_o they_o may_v shed_v their_o blood_n for_o christ._n and_o in_o a_o lap_n 3_o place_n speak_v of_o a_o certain_a child_n that_o have_v be_v pollute_v in_o the_o idol_n temple_n he_o say_v when_o as_o the_o solemnity_n be_v fulfil_v the_o deacon_n begin_v to_o offer_v the_o cup_n to_o they_o that_o be_v present_a &_o when_o other_o have_v receive_v her_o course_n come_v but_o the_o little_a girl_n by_o the_o instinct_n of_o god_n turn_v away_o her_o
face_n &_o begin_v to_o close_v her_o mouth_n with_o her_o lip_n &_o to_o refuse_v the_o cup_n but_o the_o deacon_n desist_v not_o but_o though_o she_o resist_v pour_v into_o her_o mouth_n out_o of_o the_o chalice_n and_o dispute_v against_o they_o that_o be_v name_v aquarii_n he_o say_v in_o minister_a the_o cup_n to_o the_o people_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o christ_n do_v &_o teach_v they_o give_v water_n instead_o of_o wine_n let_v they_o tell_v we_o say_v 16._o origon_n what_o people_n that_o be_v that_o use_v to_o drink_v blood_n ambrose_n if_o so_o often_o as_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v pour_v out_o it_o be_v pour_v out_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n it_o behove_v 6_o i_o always_o to_o receive_v it_o that_o my_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v i_o 41._o laurence_n the_o deacon_n say_v sixtus_n the_o b._n commit_v unto_o he_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o lord_n blood_n &_o make_v he_o his_o consort_n in_o consummate_v the_o sacrament_n 3._o hierom_n upon_o sophonie_n the_o priest_n which_o do_v serve_v about_o the_o eucharist_n and_o distribute_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n unto_o his_o people_n do_v wicked_o against_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n when_o they_o think_v that_o the_o word_n not_o the_o life_n of_o he_o that_o pray_v make_v the_o eucharist_n frangitur_fw-la augustine_n cum_fw-la frangitur_fw-la hostia_fw-la dum_fw-la sanguis_fw-la de_fw-la calice_n in_o or_o a_o fidelium_fw-la funditur_fw-la quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la quam_fw-la dominici_fw-la corporis_fw-la in_o cruse_n immolatio_fw-la eiusque_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la de_fw-la latere_fw-la effusio_fw-la designatur_fw-la that_o be_v when_o the_o host_n be_v break_v &_o the_o blood_n pour_v out_o of_o the_o chalice_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a what_o other_o thing_n be_v represent_v thereby_o but_o the_o offering_n of_o christ_n body_n on_o the_o cross_n &_o the_o pour_v of_o the_o blood_n out_o of_o his_o side_n ●_o nazianzen_n reverere_fw-la mysticam_fw-la mensam_fw-la ad_fw-la quam_fw-la accessisti_fw-la panem_fw-la quem_fw-la participasti_fw-la poculum_fw-la cui_fw-la communicasti_fw-la passionibus_fw-la christi_fw-la initiatus_fw-la reverence_n baptisma_fw-la the_o lord_n table_n to_o which_o thou_o have_v access_n the_o bread_n whereof_o thou_o have_v be_v partaker_n the_o cup_n in_o which_o thou_o have_v communicate_v be_v initiate_v in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ._n ●_o cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n concauâ_fw-la manu_fw-la suseipe_n corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la dicens_fw-la amen_o tum_fw-la verò_fw-la post_fw-la communionem_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la accede_v &_o mystag●…_n ad_fw-la calicem_fw-la illius_fw-la etc._n etc._n dicens_fw-la amen_o that_o be_v receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o hollow_a hand_n say_v amen_n and_o after_o the_o partake_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n come_v also_o to_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n &c_n &c_n say_v amen_n and_o co●…_n chrysostome_n most_o full_o to_o this_o purpose_n it_o be_v not_o now_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n where_o the_o priest_n do_v eat_v same_o thing_n and_o the_o people_n some_o other_o and_o where_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o people_n to_o partake_v of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o the_o priest_n do_v partake_v but_o one_o body_n be_v propose_v to_o all_o and_o one_o cup._n gregory_n his_o body_n be_v there_o receive_v his_o flesh_n be_v there_o divide_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o people_n his_o blood_n be_v not_o now_o shed_v upon_o the_o hand_n c._n of_o infidel_n but_o into_o the_o mouth_n of_o believer_n ●_o ordo_fw-la romanus_n put_v forth_o by_o cassander_n 23._o the_o archdeacon_n take_v the_o chalice_n confirm_v all_o they_o with_o the_o lord_n blood_n who_o the_o pope_n have_v cease_v to_o communicate_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o again_o as_o the_o archdeacon_n do_v confirm_v those_o that_o the_o pope_n communicate_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o do_v the_o other_o deacons_n confirm_v they_o that_o the_o other_o bishop_n or_o priest_n communicate_v 31._o libre_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la put_v out_o by_o gregory_n prescribe_v thus_o when_o the_o priest_n give_v the_o lord_n body_n let_v he_o say_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n keep_v thou_o unto_o eternal_a life_n amen_n and_o let_v he_o that_o receive_v say_v i_o will_v receive_v the_o celestial_a bread_n &_o will_v call_v on_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n also_o when_o the_o priest_n give_v the_o cup_n let_v he_o say_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n keep_v thou_o unto_o eternal_a life_n &_o let_v he_o that_o receive_v it_o say_v i_o will_v receive_v the_o cup_n of_o salvation_n ●…20_n beda_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o kill_v nor_o his_o blood_n shed_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o infidel_n to_o their_o own_o destruction_n but_o it_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o believer_n to_o salvation_n the_o 11_o t_o council_n of_o toledo_n provide_v that_o such_o as_o through_o weakness_n can_v receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n but_o only_o drink_v of_o the_o mystical_a cup_n shall_v not_o for_o this_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n 14_o charles_n the_o great_a the_o mystery_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n &_o blood_n be_v daily_o binium_fw-la receive_v of_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o sacrament_n rabanus_n moguntinus_n god_n will_v have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n receive_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o by_o the_o visible_a work_n the_o invisible_a effect_n may_v be_v show_v paschasius_fw-la 3_o it_o be_v he_o only_o that_o break_v this_o bread_n &_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o minister_n distribute_v it_o to_o the_o believer_n say_v take_v you_o &_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o aswell_o 15._o minister_n as_o other_o believer_n for_o this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a &_o eternal_a testament_n haimo_fw-la upon_o the_o 1._o cor._n 10._o the_o cup_n be_v call_v a_o communication_n as_o it_o be_v a_o participation_n because_o all_o do_v communicate_v of_o it_o &_o do_v take_v part_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o it_o contain_v in_o it_o 9_o rupertus_n abbas_n the_o priest_n distribute_v the_o bread_n &_o wine_n put_v they_o into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o faithful_a 10._o anselm_n all_o we_o which_o receive_v of_o one_o bread_n &_o one_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v make_v one_o body_n eucharist_n lanfrancus_fw-la have_v the_o same_o word_n that_o afore_o we_o cite_v out_o of_o augustine_n 3._o algerus_n because_o we_o live_v so_o by_o bread_n &_o drink_n that_o we_o can_v want_v either_o of_o they_o christ_n will_v have_v they_o both_o in_o his_o sacrament_n lest_o if_o either_o be_v want_v the_o signification_n of_o life_n be_v imperfect_a he_o may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v imperfect_a life_n petrus_n cluniacensis_fw-la abbess_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v give_v to_o man_n to_o be_v eat_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n &_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v drink_v under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n that_o as_o man_n do_v principal_o use_v bread_n &_o wine_n for_o the_o maintain_n of_o this_o present_a life_n so_o for_o the_o life_n that_o be_v eternal_a they_o may_v be_v say_v with_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n here_o spiritual_o &_o hereafter_o both_o spiritual_o &_o corporal_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n say_v caietan_n 12._o the_o people_n do_v communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o 1_o cor._n 11._o this_o custom_n continue_v not_o only_o in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n &_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o martyr_n who_o cyprian_a will_v have_v to_o be_v comfort_v &_o strengthen_v with_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n before_o they_o come_v to_o drink_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o martyrdom_n but_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n also_o and_o therefore_o we_o read_v not_o only_o of_o the_o make_n &_o provide_v of_o dish_n but_o of_o ministerial_a chalice_n much_o different_a from_o those_o wherein_o they_o now_o consecrate_v &_o out_o of_o which_o the_o priest_n receive_v which_o be_v therefore_o name_v ministerial_a chalice_n because_o they_o serve_v not_o to_o offer_v but_o to_o minister_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o 31._o pontifical_a of_o damasus_n in_o the_o life_n of_o sylvester_n we_o read_v that_o constantine_n build_v a_o church_n in_o the_o city_n of_o naples_n where_o he_o offer_v two_o plate_n or_o dish_n and_o 10_o ministerial_a chalice_n weigh_v every_o one_o of_o they_o two_o pound_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v that_o of_o bless_a remigius_n as_o we_o find_v in_o hincmarus_n in_o which_o these_o verse_n be_v hauriat_fw-la hinc_fw-la populus_fw-la vitam_fw-la de_fw-la sanguine_fw-la sacro_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v let_v the_o people_n draw_v life_n out_o of_o this_o sacred_a blood_n our_o father_n say_v 231._o joachimus_n vadianus_n
do_v see_v in_o the_o great_a church_n of_o sangalli_n a_o chalice_n guild_v with_o gold_n that_o weigh_v threescore_o and_o ten_o mark_n of_o silver_n provide_v no_o doubt_n for_o the_o public_a communion_n of_o the_o people_n former_o use_v mil._n beatus_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la say_v that_o conradus_n pellicanus_fw-la a_o man_n of_o wonderful_a sanctity_n and_o learning_n do_v find_v in_o the_o first_o constitution_n of_o the_o carthusian_n that_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o possess_v any_o vessel_n of_o price_n beside_o a_o silver_n chalice_n and_o a_o pipe_n with_o which_o the_o lie_v people_n may_v suck_v out_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n beside_o the_o book_n write_v more_o than_o four_o hundred_o year_n since_o concern_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n of_o mentz_n among_o chalice_n of_o gold_n of_o a_o great_a weight_n have_v handle_n and_o golden_a cross_n &c_n &c_n reckon_v also_o silver_n pipe_n six_o in_o number_n if_o i_o be_v not_o deceive_v depute_v to_o this_o use_n of_o suck_v out_o the_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o i_o suppose_v say_v he_o the_o archbishop_n be_v wont_a to_o use_v ordo_fw-la romanus_n show_v that_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v celebrate_v the_o archdeacon_n give_v he_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o holy_a chalice_n and_o afterward_o pour_v a_o little_a out_o of_o the_o same_o into_o a_o great_a chalice_n or_o cup_n which_o the_o acoluth_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o people_n may_v be_v confirm_v or_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n blood_n out_o of_o the_o sacred_a vessel_n for_o the_o wine_n that_o be_v not_o consecrate_v be_v mingle_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v altogether_o sanctify_a the_o bishop_n therefore_o come_v in_o order_n to_o receive_v of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o after_n they_o all_o the_o priest_n come_v up_o that_o they_o may_v communicate_v at_o the_o altar_n and_o while_o the_o archdeacon_n communicate_v the_o chief_a bishop_n that_o be_v present_a hold_v the_o chalice_n for_o as_o bishop_n attend_v the_o pope_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o priest_n shall_v attend_v and_o assist_v bishop_n in_o other_o church_n the_o archdeacon_n after_o he_o have_v communicate_v receive_v the_o chalice_n back_o again_o from_o the_o bishop_n and_o confirm_v all_o those_o with_o the_o lord_n blood_n to_o who_o the_o pope_n have_v give_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n this_o service_n be_v perform_v by_o the_o altar_n have_v receive_v by_o the_o subdeacon_n the_o pipe_n with_o which_o the_o people_n be_v to_o be_v confirm_v the_o archdeacon_n deliver_v the_o chalice_n to_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o acoluth_n to_o be_v lay_v up_o by_o he_o in_o the_o vestery_n then_o do_v the_o pope_n go_v down_o to_o give_v the_o communion_n to_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n and_o their_o wife_n and_o as_o the_o archdeacon_n do_v confirm_v those_o to_o who_o the_o pope_n give_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n so_o do_v the_o other_o deacon_n confirm_v they_o to_o who_o after_o the_o pope_n have_v minister_v to_o those_o of_o the_o better_a sort_n the_o other_o bishop_n and_o priest_n do_v give_v the_o communion_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o pope_n begin_v to_o minister_v the_o communion_n to_o the_o clergy_n and_o people_n the_o school_n of_o singer_n begin_v to_o sing_v the_o anthem_n appoint_v for_o the_o communion_n and_o after_o that_o when_o the_o pope_n think_v fit_a glory_n be_v to_o the_o father_n etc._n etc._n here_o we_o see_v a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n testify_v for_o the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n whereupon_o ●_o cassander_n fear_v not_o to_o pronounce_v that_o he_o very_o think_v specie_fw-la it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v any_o otherwise_o minister_v in_o any_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o the_o faithful_a people_n in_o the_o holy_a assembly_n from_o the_o lord_n table_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o but_o under_o both_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n neither_o can_v this_o say_n of_o cassander_n be_v refute_v by_o that_o in_o the_o second_o of_o the_o act_n where_o the_o faithful_a be_v say_v to_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o break_n of_o bread_n and_o prayer_n nor_o by_o that_o we_o read_v in_o antiquity_n of_o the_o lay_v communion_n which_o caietan_n childish_o urge_v for_o sundry_a worthy_a divine_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v sufficient_o show_v the_o weakness_n of_o these_o silly_a allegation_n let_v we_o see_v therefore_o how_o the_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n come_v into_o the_o church_n it_o appear_v by_o 〈◊〉_d leo_n the_o first_o that_o the_o manichee_n as_o they_o deny_v christ_n to_o have_v be_v bear_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o flesh_n so_o they_o deny_v he_o to_o have_v true_o die_v and_o rise_v again_o and_o therefore_o they_o use_v to_o fast_v upon_o that_o day_n that_o be_v to_o we_o the_o day_n of_o salvation_n and_o joy_n and_o whereas_o to_o hide_v their_o infidelity_n and_o heresy_n they_o come_v sometime_o to_o the_o church_n of_o catholic_n and_o be_v present_a at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n they_o do_v so_o temper_v the_o matter_n that_o with_o unworthy_a mouth_n they_o receive_v the_o lord_n body_n but_o decline_v to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o redemption_n leo_fw-la careful_o endeavour_v to_o make_v this_o thing_n know_v to_o all_o that_o by_o these_o sign_n they_o may_v be_v descry_v that_o their_o sacrilegious_a dissemble_n may_v be_v find_v out_o and_o that_o be_v discover_v they_o may_v by_o sacerdotal_a authority_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o society_n of_o the_o saint_n by_o this_o of_o leo_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o manichee_n out_o of_o a_o heretical_a conceit_n begin_v to_o communicate_v in_o one_o kind_n and_o that_o all_o be_v wont_a to_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n that_o hereby_o the_o manichee_n may_v be_v discover_v and_o know_v from_o other_o right_a believer_n in_o that_o they_o will_v communicate_v but_o in_o one_o kind_n alone_o which_o thing_n also_o andradius_fw-la do_v right_o note_v in_o the_o 2._o time_n of_o gelasius_n there_o be_v certain_a find_v that_o out_o of_o some_o superstitious_a conceit_n will_v not_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n we_o have_v find_v say_v gelasius_n that_o certain_a have_v receive_v a_o portion_n of_o the_o sacred_a body_n only_o abstain_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a blood_n which_o man_n because_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v hold_v with_o i_o know_v not_o what_o superstition_n either_o let_v they_o receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n or_o let_v they_o be_v put_v and_o keep_v from_o the_o whole_a see_v there_o can_v be_v no_o division_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o mystery_n without_o grievous_a sacrilege_n three_o whereas_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o when_o child_n or_o such_o as_o be_v sick_a and_o weak_a be_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n the_o ancient_a do_v sometime_o dip_v the_o mystical_a bread_n into_o the_o consecrate_a wine_n and_o so_o give_v it_o unto_o they_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o history_n of_o serapion_n by_o that_o which_o lap_n cyprian_n and_o 6_o prosper_v report_n and_o by_o that_o which_o the_o 19_o council_n of_o turon_n prescribe_v that_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v reserve_v for_o the_o voyage_n provision_n of_o such_o as_o be_v ready_a to_o depart_v hence_o shall_v be_v dip_v into_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o so_o the_o priest_n may_v true_o say_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v beneficial_a unto_o thou_o unto_o eternal_a life_n 31._o some_o begin_v to_o bring_v in_o this_o manner_n of_o dip_v into_o the_o ordinary_a communion_n under_o pretence_n of_o careful_a avoid_v the_o danger_n of_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o great_a reverence_n towards_o the_o same_o for_o certain_a monk_n bring_v the_o same_o custom_n into_o their_o monastery_n ingenuous_o confess_v that_o herein_o they_o do_v contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o other_o church_n but_o that_o they_o be_v force_v so_o to_o do_v by_o the_o rudeness_n of_o their_o novice_n who_o they_o fear_v will_v run_v into_o some_o gross_a neglect_n if_o they_o shall_v receive_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n apart_o neither_o do_v this_o custom_n stay_v here_o but_o it_o make_v a_o entrance_n into_o other_o church_n abroad_o also_o for_o ibid._n ivo_n carnotensis_n about_o the_o year_n 1100_o have_v these_o word_n let_v they_o not_o communicate_v in_o the_o bread_n dip_v but_o according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o toledo_n let_v they_o communicate_v in_o the_o body_n apart_o and_o in_o the_o blood_n apart_o those_o only_o except_v to_o who_o it_o be_v not_o prescribe_v but_o permit_v to_o communicate_v in_o the_o bread_n dip_v out_o of_o
due_a consideration_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o spill_v and_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o this_o attempt_n be_v dislike_v and_o resist_v for_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n entitle_v 19_o micrologus_n say_v it_o be_v not_o authentical_a that_o certain_a do_v dip_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o have_v so_o dip_v it_o give_v it_o to_o the_o people_n think_v thereby_o to_o make_v up_o unto_o they_o the_o whole_a communion_n but_o the_o roman_a order_n be_v against_o this_o and_o do_v prescribe_v that_o upon_o good_a friday_n when_o they_o consecrate_v not_o but_o use_v the_o bread_n consecrate_v the_o day_n before_o they_o shall_v take_v wine_n that_o be_v not_o consecrate_v and_o consecrate_v it_o with_o the_o lord_n player_n and_o dip_v of_o the_o lord_n body_n into_o it_o that_o so_o the_o people_n may_v receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n which_o prescription_n be_v superfluous_a if_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o dip_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o day_n before_o &_o so_o to_o keep_v it_o &_o to_o give_v it_o so_o dip_v to_o the_o people_n to_o communicate_v in_o pope_n julius_n in_o order_n of_o pope_n the_o 36_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n do_v altogether_o forbid_v any_o such_o dip_v &_o command_v the_o bread_n &_o cup_n to_o be_v receive_v apart_o what_o the_o credit_n of_o this_o epistle_n be_v which_o the_o author_n of_o this_o book_n cit_v as_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n julius_n i_o know_v not_o neither_o do_v i_o think_v that_o any_o such_o custom_n of_o give_v the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o church_n in_o such_o sort_n be_v so_o ancient_a as_o to_o be_v reprehend_v by_o pope_n julius_n but_o it_o appear_v that_o such_o dip_v when_o it_o begin_v to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n find_v great_a opposition_n &_o therefore_o this_o suppose_a constitution_n of_o julius_n be_v renew_v &_o confirm_v in_o the_o 3_o council_n of_o 1._o bracar_n &_o micrologus_fw-la add_v that_o bless_a gelasius_n in_o order_n of_o pope_n the_o 51_o writing_n to_o certain_a bishop_n command_v they_o to_o excommunicate_v all_o those_o that_o receive_v the_o lord_n body_n abstain_v from_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o cup_n pronounce_v in_o the_o same_o decree_n that_o such_o division_n of_o the_o sacrament_n can_v be_v without_o horrible_a sacrilege_n by_o this_o of_o micrologus_fw-la it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o think_v in_o those_o time_n that_o not_o only_o the_o communicate_v in_o one_o kind_n alone_o out_o of_o such_o erroneous_a conceit_n as_o those_o of_o the_o manichee_n and_o other_o like_a but_o all_o communicate_v in_o one_o kind_n alone_o be_v sacrilegious_a and_o that_o they_o can_v not_o endure_v the_o dip_v of_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n whereby_o yet_o the_o people_n do_v in_o a_o sort_n partake_v of_o both_o kind_n neither_o do_v micrologus_n alone_o show_v the_o dislike_n that_o then_o be_v of_o such_o dip_v but_o the_o like_a we_o may_v find_v in_o the_o write_n of_o sundry_a worthy_a man_n 64._o hildebertus_n cenomanensis_fw-la hoec_fw-la ideo_fw-la tibi_fw-la frater_fw-la exaravi_fw-la ut_fw-la excitatus_fw-la evigiles_fw-la ut_fw-la videas_fw-la quoniam_fw-la traditioni_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la altaris_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o vestro_fw-la celebris_fw-la est_fw-la monasterio_fw-la nec_fw-la evangelica_n traditio_fw-la consonat_fw-la nec_fw-la decreta_fw-la concordant_a in_o eo_fw-la enim_fw-la consuetudinis_fw-la est_fw-la eucharistiam_fw-la nulli_fw-la nisi_fw-la intinctam_fw-la dare_v quod_fw-la nec_fw-la ex_fw-la dominica_fw-la institutione_n nec_fw-la ex_fw-la sanctionibus_fw-la authenticis_fw-la reperitur_fw-la assumptum_fw-la si_fw-la mathaeum_n si_fw-la marcum_fw-la si_fw-la lucam_fw-la consulas_fw-la seorsim_fw-la panem_fw-la traditum_fw-la inuenies_fw-la seorsim_fw-la vinum_fw-la &c_n &c_n nam_fw-la intinctum_fw-la panem_fw-la aliis_fw-la praebuisse_fw-la christum_fw-la non_fw-la legimus_fw-la excepto_fw-la tantummodo_fw-la illo_fw-la discipulo_fw-la quem_fw-la intincta_fw-la buccella_fw-la proditorem_fw-la ostenderit_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la huius_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la institutionem_fw-la fignaret_fw-la &_o sic_fw-la papa_n julius_n ait_fw-fr etc._n etc._n that_o be_v brother_n i_o have_v therefore_o write_v these_o thing_n unto_o thou_o that_o be_v stir_v by_o i_o thou_o may_v be_v awaken_v to_o see_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o deliver_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v grow_v into_o use_n in_o your_o monastery_n be_v neither_o consonant_n to_o the_o evangelical_a tradition_n nor_o agree_v with_o the_o decree_n for_o in_o your_o monastery_n it_o be_v become_v a_o custom_n to_o give_v the_o mystical_a bread_n to_o none_o but_o dip_v which_o will_v never_o be_v find_v to_o have_v take_v beginning_n from_o the_o lord_n institution_n or_o authentical_a constitution_n for_o if_o thou_o consult_v matthew_n or_o mark_v or_o luke_n thou_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v deliver_v apart_o and_o the_o wine_n apart_o etc._n etc._n for_o we_o read_v not_o that_o christ_n give_v dip_v bread_n to_o any_o other_o but_o only_o to_o that_o disciple_n who_o by_o the_o dip_v sop_n he_o mean_v to_o show_v to_o be_v the_o traitor_n and_o not_o that_o he_o will_v have_v the_o sacrament_n so_o minister_v and_o so_o pope_n julius_n say_v etc._n etc._n from_o the_o custom_n of_o dip_v the_o mystical_a bread_n into_o the_o blood_n &_o give_v it_o so_o dip_v unto_o the_o people_n for_o fear_n of_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n if_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v minister_v apart_o some_o proceed_v far_a and_o begin_v to_o teach_v the_o people_n that_o see_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v separate_v in_o that_o they_o partake_v of_o the_o one_o they_o partake_v of_o the_o other_o also_o and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n alone_o but_o herein_o they_o give_v no_o satisfaction_n either_o to_o themselves_o or_o other_o for_o though_o it_o be_v true_a say_v 42._o durandus_fw-la that_o they_o be_v not_o separate_v and_o that_o he_o that_o receive_v the_o one_o receive_v the_o other_o also_o yet_o neither_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v superfluous_a but_o both_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v for_o whereas_o wine_n breed_v blood_n wherein_o the_o soul_n &_o life_n be_v seat_v according_a to_o that_o in_o leviticus_n the_o soul_n of_o all_o flesh_n be_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o it_o and_o whereas_o in_o the_o offering_n that_o be_v of_o old_a the_o flesh_n of_o those_o beast_n that_o be_v sacrifice_v be_v offer_v for_o the_o body_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o they_o for_o the_o soul_n if_o we_o shall_v receive_v christ_n body_n and_o together_o with_o it_o the_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n signify_v and_o exhibit_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n signify_v &_o exhibit_v unto_o we_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n we_o may_v be_v think_v to_o neglect_v the_o salvation_n and_o good_a of_o our_o soul_n and_o elsewhere_a he_o say_v that_o he_o that_o receive_v only_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n receive_v not_o the_o whole_a &_o entire_a sacrament_n for_o howsoever_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o host_n or_o consecrate_a bread_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o there_o sacramental_o see_v bread_n do_v not_o signify_v the_o blood_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n neither_o the_o wine_n the_o body_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o in_o the_o former_a place_n he_o add_v out_o of_o innocentius_n tertius_fw-la that_o though_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v receive_v with_o the_o body_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o the_o body_n with_o the_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n yet_o neither_o can_v we_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n which_o we_o eat_v nor_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n which_o we_o drink_v and_o sundry_a of_o the_o schoolman_n agree_v with_o he_o in_o this_o point_n resolve_v that_o though_o christ_n be_v whole_a and_o entire_a in_o either_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o both_o part_n be_v necessary_a first_o because_o the_o exhibit_v of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n distinct_o represent_v his_o passion_n in_o which_o his_o blood_n be_v separate_v from_o his_o body_n and_o second_o because_o in_o this_o sort_n christ_n body_n be_v more_o fit_o and_o significant_o exhibit_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o food_n and_o his_o blood_n of_o drink_n if_o this_o sacrament_n be_v worthy_o receive_v under_o both_o kind_n say_v 2._o alexander_n of_o hales_n there_o be_v a_o great_a efficacy_n and_o work_n of_o grace_n cause_v a_o unity_n between_o the_o mystical_a body_n &_o christ_n the_o head_n then_o when_o it_o be_v receive_v in_o one_o kind_n only_o and_o therefore_o he_o say_v 53._o though_o the_o receive_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v sufficient_a yet_o that_o which_o be_v under_o both_o be_v of_o more_o
to_o permit_v &_o leave_v free_a the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n to_o the_o lie_v people_n be_v move_v so_o to_o do_v by_o charles_n the_o archduke_n his_o son_n &_o the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n his_o son_n in_o law_n and_o the_o due_a consideration_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o his_o subject_n 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v extant_a certain_a article_n concern_v reformation_n of_o manner_n &_o church_n discipline_n propose_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n by_o the_o ambassador_n of_o charles_n the_o nine_o the_o french_a king_n among_o which_o the_o 18_o article_n be_v that_o the_o ancient_a decree_n of_o leo_n and_o gelasius_n touch_v the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n may_v be_v revive_v &_o bring_v to_o be_v in_o use_n again_o but_o when_o the_o french_a perceive_v that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o footstep_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n to_o be_v discern_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o all_o thing_n be_v sway_v and_o dispose_v by_o the_o absolute_a command_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o then_o pope_n the_o ambassador_n be_v command_v to_o make_v a_o protestation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o king_n their_o master_n the_o word_n of_o which_o protestation_n be_v these_o we_o refuse_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o command_n &_o disposition_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o we_o reject_v we_o refuse_v &_o contemn_v all_o the_o judgement_n censure_n &_o decree_n of_o the_o same_o pius_fw-la and_o although_o most_o holy_a father_n your_o religion_n life_n and_o learning_n be_v ever_o and_o ever_o shall_v be_v of_o great_a esteem_n with_o we_o yet_o see_v indeed_o you_o do_v nothing_o but_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v at_o rome_n rather_o than_o at_o trent_n and_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v here_o publish_v be_v rather_o the_o deeree_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o then_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n we_o denounce_v &_o protest_v here_o before_o you_o all_o that_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v decree_v &_o publish_v in_o this_o assembly_n by_o the_o mere_a will_n &_o pleasure_n of_o pius_n neither_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n will_v ever_o approve_v nor_o the_o french_a church_n ever_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_a council_n beside_o this_o the_o king_n our_o master_n command_v all_o his_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n and_o abbot_n to_o leave_v this_o assembly_n and_o present_o to_o depart_v hence_o then_o to_o return_v again_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v hope_n of_o better_a &_o more_o orderly_a proceed_n wherefore_o from_o this_o point_n of_o romish_a religion_n touch_v the_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n which_o find_v no_o help_n in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n use_v in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o people_n be_v wont_a to_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n when_o that_o form_n of_o divine_a service_n be_v first_o compose_v nor_o no_o like_v or_o approbation_n of_o the_o best_a and_o worthy_a guide_n of_o god_n church_n then_o live_v let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o next_o which_o be_v the_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a this_o indeed_o be_v a_o grand_a point_n of_o romish_a religion_n and_o if_o m_n brerelie_o can_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n that_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n at_o and_o immediate_o before_o luther_n appear_v and_o consequent_o that_o all_o that_o use_v that_o liturgy_n have_v such_o a_o opinion_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n he_o have_v say_v much_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n under_o the_o papacy_n be_v no_o protestant_n church_n but_o this_o neither_o he_o nor_o all_o the_o most_o learned_a papist_n in_o the_o world_n will_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v first_o therefore_o i_o will_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n import_v no_o such_o sacrifice_n and_o second_o i_o will_v show_v at_o large_a that_o neither_o before_o nor_o after_o luther_n appear_v the_o church_n believe_v or_o know_v any_o such_o new_a real_a sacrifice_a of_o christ_n as_o be_v now_o imagine_v touch_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n it_o be_v true_a that_o therein_o there_o be_v often_o mention_v of_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n but_o luther_n profess_v that_o the_o word_n may_v be_v understand_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v dislike_v and_o he_o say_v he_o can_v so_o expound_v it_o and_o that_o somewhere_o he_o have_v so_o expound_v it_o but_o see_v it_o be_v obseure_n and_o may_v bear_v diverse_a sense_n and_o a_o better_a and_o more_o clear_a form_n of_o divine_a celebration_n may_v be_v bring_v in_o he_o will_v not_o honour_v it_o so_o much_o as_o to_o give_v it_o that_o sense_n which_o it_o may_v well_o carry_v and_o in_o which_o the_o first_o composer_n of_o it_o and_o other_o after_o do_v use_v it_o but_o that_o wherein_o they_o of_o rome_n will_v now_o needs_o have_v it_o to_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o form_n of_o word_n use_v in_o the_o canon_n be_v obscure_a in_o sundry_a part_n of_o it_o and_o hard_o to_o be_v understand_v even_o by_o the_o learned_a 242._o cassander_n confess_v and_o therefore_o think_v it_o fit_a it_o be_v explain_v &_o illustrate_v by_o some_o brief_a scholies_n put_v in_o the_o margin_n or_o insert_v into_o the_o text_n by_o way_n of_o parenthesis_n the_o obscurity_n that_o be_v in_o it_o grow_v as_o he_o right_o observe_v partly_o out_o of_o the_o disuse_n &_o discontinue_v of_o certain_a old_a observation_n to_o which_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n compose_v long_o since_o have_v a_o reference_n and_o partly_o from_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n sacrifice_n in_o diverse_a and_o different_a sense_n though_o all_o connex_v &_o the_o sudden_a pass_v from_o the_o use_n of_o it_o in_o one_o sense_n to_o the_o use_v of_o it_o in_o another_o it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o they_o that_o be_v learned_a that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o people_n be_v wont_a to_o offer_v bread_n &_o wine_n and_o that_o out_o of_o that_o which_o they_o offer_v a_o part_n be_v consecrate_v to_o become_v unto_o they_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n &_o blood_n &_o other_o part_n convert_v to_o other_o good_a &_o holy_a use_n respective_o to_o this_o ancient_a custom_n be_v those_o prayer_n conceive_v that_o be_v name_v secretae_fw-la &_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n wherein_o we_o desire_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v those_o gift_n present_n offering_n and_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o bring_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o he_o will_v make_v they_o to_o become_v unto_o we_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n christ_n which_o only_o be_v that_o sacrifice_n that_o procure_v the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o our_o reconciliation_n and_o acceptation_n with_o god_n so_o that_o to_o take_v away_o this_o obscurity_n &_o that_o the_o word_n may_v have_v a_o true_a sense_n the_o ancient_a custom_n must_v be_v bring_v back_o again_o or_o at_o least_o it_o must_v be_v conceive_v that_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n that_o be_v set_v upon_o the_o mystical_a table_n &_o be_v to_o be_v consecrate_v be_v bring_v thither_o and_o offer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o people_n and_o that_o as_o be_v their_o present_n they_o be_v symbol_n of_o that_o inward_a sacrifice_n whereby_o they_o dedicate_v and_o give_v themselves_o and_o all_o that_o they_o have_v unto_o god_n touch_v the_o second_o cause_n of_o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n which_o be_v the_o use_v of_o the_o word_n sacrifice_n and_o ●…ffering_n in_o so_o manifold_a and_o different_a sense_n and_o the_o sudden_a pass_v from_o the_o one_o of_o they_o to_o the_o other_o we_o must_v observe_v that_o by_o the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n gift_n or_o present_a first_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o people_n be_v mean_v that_o consist_v in_o bread_n and_o wine_n bring_v and_o set_v upon_o the_o lord_n table_n in_o which_o again_o 2_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v the_o outward_a action_n and_o that_o which_o be_v signify_v thereby_o to_o wit_v the_o people_n dedicate_a of_o themselves_o and_o all_o that_o they_o have_v to_o god_n by_o faith_n and_o devotion_n &_o offer_v to_o he_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v the_o word_n sacrifice_v use_v in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o canon_n as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v in_o respect_n of_o this_o be_v that_o prayer_n pour_v out_o to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v be_v mindful_a of_o his_o servant_n that_o do_v offer_v unto_o he_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n that_o be_v these_o outward_a thing_n in_o acknowledgement_n that_o all_o be_v of_o he_o that_o they_o have_v perish_v if_o he_o have_v not_o send_v his_o son_n to_o redeem_v they_o that_o unless_o they_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n
of_o christ_n they_o have_v no_o life_n that_o he_o have_v institute_v holy_a sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o which_o he_o will_v not_o only_o represent_v but_o exhibit_v the_o same_o unto_o all_o such_o as_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o righteousness_n and_o therefore_o they_o desire_v he_o so_o to_o accept_v and_o sanctify_v these_o their_o oblation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o in_o this_o sort_n they_o offer_v unto_o he_o that_o they_o may_v become_v unto_o they_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o so_o partake_v in_o they_o they_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n and_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o redemption_n and_o salvation_n that_o he_o have_v wrought_v second_o by_o the_o name_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v understand_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n wherein_o we_o must_v first_o consider_v the_o thing_n offer_v and_o second_o the_o manner_n of_o offering_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v offer_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o eternal_a and_o perpetual_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n in_o that_o it_o be_v once_o offer_v by_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o have_v a_o everlasting_a and_o never_o fail_a force_n and_o efficacy_n touch_v the_o manner_n of_o offer_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v a_o double_a offering_n of_o a_o thing_n to_o god_n first_o so_o as_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v that_o give_v something_o to_o god_n out_o of_o that_o they_o possess_v profess_v that_o they_o will_v no_o long_o be_v owner_n of_o it_o but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v he_o and_o serve_v for_o such_o use_n and_o employment_n as_o he_o shall_v convert_v it_o too_o second_o a_o man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o offer_v a_o thing_n unto_o god_n in_o that_o he_o bring_v it_o to_o his_o presence_n set_v it_o before_o his_o eye_n and_o offer_v it_o to_o his_o view_n to_o incline_v he_o to_o do_v something_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o it_o and_o respect_n have_v to_o it_o in_o this_o sort_n christ_n offer_v himself_o and_o his_o body_n once_o crucify_v daily_o in_o heaven_n and_o so_o intercede_v for_o we_o not_o as_o give_v it_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o gift_n or_o present_a for_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o god_n once_o to_o be_v holy_a unto_o he_o for_o ever_o nor_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o he_o die_v once_o for_o sin_n and_o rise_v again_o never_o to_o die_v any_o more_o but_o in_o that_o he_o set_v it_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n his_o father_n represent_v it_o unto_o he_o and_o so_o offer_v it_o to_o his_o view_n to_o obtain_v grace_n and_o mercy_n for_o us._n and_o in_o this_o sort_n we_o also_o offer_v he_o daily_o on_o the_o altar_n in_o that_o commemorate_n his_o death_n and_o lively_o represent_v his_o bitter_a passion_n endure_v in_o his_o body_n upon_o the_o cross_n we_o offer_v he_o that_o be_v once_o crucify_v and_o sacrifice_v for_o we_o on_o the_o cross_n and_o all_o his_o suffering_n to_o the_o view_n and_o gracious_a consideration_n of_o the_o almighty_a earnest_o desire_v and_o assure_o hope_v that_o he_o will_v incline_v to_o pity_v we_o and_o show_v mercy_n unto_o we_o for_o this_o his_o dear_a son_n sake_n who_o in_o our_o nature_n for_o we_o to_o satisfy_v his_o displeasure_n and_o to_o procure_v we_o acceptation_n endure_v such_o and_o so_o grievous_a thing_n this_o kind_n of_o offering_n or_o sacrifice_a christ_n commemorative_o be_v twofold_a inward_a and_o outward_a outward_a as_o the_o take_n break_v and_o distribute_v the_o mystical_a bread_n and_o pour_a out_o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n which_o be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n the_o inward_a consist_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o devotion_n of_o the_o church_n &_o people_n of_o god_n so_o commemorate_n the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n their_o crucify_a saviour_n and_o represent_v and_o set_v it_o before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o almighty_a that_o they_o fly_v unto_o it_o as_o their_o only_a stay_n and_o refuge_n and_o beseech_v he_o to_o be_v merciful_a unto_o they_o for_o his_o sake_n that_o endure_v all_o these_o thing_n to_o satisfy_v his_o wrath_n &_o work_v their_o peace_n &_o good_a and_o in_o this_o sense_n and_o answerable_a hereunto_o that_o be_v which_o we_o find_v in_o the_o canon_n where_o the_o church_n desire_v almighty_a god_n to_o accept_v those_o oblation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o she_o present_v unto_o he_o &_o to_o make_v they_o to_o become_v unto_o the_o faithful_a communicant_n the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o the_o night_n before_o he_o be_v betray_v take_v bread_n into_o his_o sacred_a hand_n lift_v up_o his_o eye_n to_o heaven_n give_v thanks_n bless_v it_o &_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n say_v take_v and_o eat_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n after_o he_o have_v sup_v take_v the_o cup_n and_o give_v thanks_n bless_v it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n do_v this_o as_o oft_o as_o you_o shall_v drink_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o then_o proceed_v and_o speak_v unto_o almighty_a god_n in_o this_o sort_n wherefore_o o_o lord_n we_o thy_o servant_n and_o thy_o holy_a people_n mindful_a of_o that_o most_o bless_a passion_n of_o the_o same_o christ_n thy_o son_n our_o lord_n as_o also_o of_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a and_o his_o glorious_a ascension_n into_o heaven_n do_v offer_n to_o thy_o divine_a majesty_n out_o of_o thy_o own_o gift_n consecrate_v and_o by_o mystical_a blessing_n make_v unto_o we_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o son_n christ_n a_o pure_a sacrifice_n a_o holy_a sacrifice_n and_o a_o undefiled_a sacrifice_n the_o holy_a bread_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o everlasting_a salvation_n that_o be_v we_o offer_v to_o thy_o view_n and_o set_v before_o thy_o eye_n the_o crucify_a body_n of_o christ_n thy_o son_n which_o be_v here_o present_a in_o mystery_n and_o sacrament_n and_o the_o blood_n which_o he_o once_o shed_v for_o our_o sake_n which_o we_o know_v to_o be_v that_o pure_a holy_a undefiled_a and_o eternal_a sacrifice_n wherewith_o only_o thou_o be_v please_v desire_v thou_o to_o be_v merciful_a unto_o we_o for_o the_o merit_n and_o worthiness_n thereof_o and_o so_o to_o look_v upon_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n which_o representative_o we_o offer_v to_o thy_o view_n as_o to_o accept_v it_o for_o a_o full_a discharge_n of_o we_o from_o our_o sin_n and_o a_o perfect_a propitiation_n that_o so_o thou_o may_v behold_v we_o with_o a_o please_v cheerful_a and_o gracious_a countenance_n this_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o that_o prayer_n in_o the_o canon_n supra_fw-la quae_fw-la propitio_fw-la &_o sereno_fw-la vultu_fw-la respicere_fw-la digneris_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o the_o best_a interpreter_n of_o the_o canon_n do_v tell_v us._n 491._o and_o when_o in_o the_o same_o prayer_n we_o desire_v that_o this_o sacrifice_n may_v be_v accept_v for_o we_o as_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o abel_n abraham_n and_o melchisedec_n be_v they_o observe_v that_o this_o comparison_n must_v not_o be_v understand_v in_o quantity_n but_o in_o similitude_n only_o for_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v infinite_o better_a than_o the_o figure_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o christ_n offer_v and_o we_o here_o commemorate_v be_v incomparablie_o more_o excellent_a than_o those_o of_o abel_n abraham_n and_o melchisedec_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o word_n be_v that_o as_o god_n accept_v those_o sacrifice_n which_o his_o servant_n offer_v unto_o he_o before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n his_o son_n as_o prefiguration_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o be_v afterward_o to_o offer_v and_o as_o a_o profession_n of_o their_o hope_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o same_o so_o it_o will_v please_v he_o to_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o christ_n once_o offer_v and_o we_o now_o commemorate_v for_o we_o and_o we_o for_o it_o that_o so_o our_o sin_n may_v be_v remit_v and_o we_o receive_v to_o favour_n after_o this_o there_o follow_v another_o prayer_n in_o the_o canon_n wherein_o as_o humble_a suppliant_n they_o that_o come_v to_o celebrate_v and_o to_o communicate_v beseech_v almighty_a god_n to_o command_v the_o oblation_n which_o they_o offer_v to_o be_v carry_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o holy_a angel_n unto_o his_o altar_n that_o be_v on_o high_a and_o into_o the_o view_n and_o sight_n of_o his_o divine_a majesty_n that_o so_o many_o as_o shall_v by_o partake_v of_o the_o altar_n receive_v the_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o heavenly_a benediction_n
non_fw-la diffido_fw-la scio_fw-la quid_fw-la faciam_fw-la calicem_fw-la salutaris_fw-la accipiam_fw-la that_o be_v when_o my_o strength_n shall_v fail_v i_o will_v not_o be_v trouble_v neither_o will_v i_o despair_v i_o know_v what_o i_o will_v do_v i_o will_v take_v the_o cup_n of_o salvation_n and_o in_o another_o place_n epi●…h_n totum_fw-la quod_fw-la dare_v possum_fw-la miserum_fw-la corpus_fw-la istud_fw-la est_fw-la id_fw-la si_fw-la minus_fw-la est_fw-la addo_fw-la &_o corpus_fw-la ipsius_fw-la nam_fw-la illud_fw-la de_fw-la meo_fw-la est_fw-la &_o meum_fw-la est_fw-la parvulus_fw-la enim_fw-la natus_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la &_o filius_fw-la datus_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la de_fw-la te_fw-la domine_fw-la suppleo_fw-la quod_fw-la minus_fw-la habeo_fw-la in_o i_o o_o dulcissima_fw-la reconciliatio_fw-la o_o suavissima_fw-la satisfactio_fw-la that_o be_v all_z that_o i_o can_v give_v be_v this_o miserable_a body_n if_o that_o be_v too_o little_a i_o add_v his_o body_n for_o that_o be_v of_o i_o and_o it_o be_v i_o a_o little_a child_n be_v bear_v unto_o we_o a_o son_n be_v give_v unto_o i_o from_o thou_o i_o take_v o_o lord_n to_o supply_v what_o i_o find_v want_v in_o myself_o o_o most_o sweet_a reconciliation_n o_o most_o sweet_a satisfactoin_n who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o god_n do_v by_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o that_o be_v that_o be_v post_n exercise_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o representative_a sacrifice_n and_o in_o the_o eat_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o suffering_n whereof_o be_v here_o represent_v apply_v the_o benefit_n of_o christ_n his_o dear_a son_n to_o his_o faithful_a one_o neither_o do_v we_o attribute_v this_o application_n to_o the_o priest_n but_o to_o god_n nor_o to_o our_o work_n but_o to_o god_n benefit_n which_o yet_o we_o receive_v no_o otherwise_o but_o by_o faith_n with_o the_o assent_n of_o our_o own_o will_n hitherto_o we_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o enchiridion_n and_o the_o same_o author_n 66._o elsewhere_a say_v that_o the_o orthodox_n divine_v deny_v the_o external_a action_n which_o we_o call_v the_o sacramental_a oblation_n to_o confer_v grace_n or_o to_o have_v any_o spiritual_a effect_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o that_o a_o wicked_a man_n may_v pronounce_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o make_v the_o element_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n to_o become_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o this_o sacrament_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n &_o of_o itself_o how_o ill_o soever_o the_o minister_n be_v will_v confer_v grace_n instrumental_o to_o all_o such_o as_o receive_v it_o without_o such_o indisposition_n as_o may_v hinder_v the_o work_n of_o it_o but_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o offering_n of_o christ_n representative_o it_o have_v no_o force_n far_o than_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o offerer_n extend_v if_o the_o priest_n therefore_o not_o only_o outward_o but_o inward_o also_o by_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n present_v the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n to_o god_n in_o desire_n by_o the_o merit_n thereof_o to_o escape_v his_o wrath_n he_o bring_v much_o good_a upon_o himself_o &_o if_o he_o devout_o beseech_v god_n for_o his_o christ_n sake_n who_o suffering_n he_o represent_v unto_o he_o to_o be_v merciful_a to_o the_o people_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n or_o to_o any_o other_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o this_o his_o prayer_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o prayer_n be_v most_o powerful_a to_o obtain_v in_o this_o kind_n but_o if_o he_o be_v wicked_a &_o faithless_a his_o representative_a offering_n of_o christ_n of_o &_o mere_o in_o respect_n of_o itself_o work_v no_o good_a to_o himself_o nor_o any_o other_o for_o in_o the_o representative_a offering_n of_o christ_n passion_n to_o god_n must_v be_v include_v a_o supplication_n make_v to_o god_n for_o that_o passion_n sake_n and_o a_o desire_n of_o those_o good_a thing_n that_o we_o need_v now_o the_o prayer_n of_o such_o a_o sinner_n god_n hear_v not_o but_o the_o people_n spiritual_o represent_v unto_o god_n by_o the_o act_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o which_o the_o priest_n do_v sacramental_o obtain_v all_o desire_a good_a and_o the_o remove_n of_o all_o evil_a not_o by_o force_n of_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v but_o by_o their_o own_o faith_n which_o be_v stir_v up_o by_o that_o outward_a act_n do_v by_o he_o the_o most_o reverend_a canon_n of_o the_o metropolitical_a church_n of_o colen_n agree_v with_o the_o author_n of_o the_o enchiridion_n their_o word_n be_v these_o 89._o consecratione_fw-la factâ_fw-la in_o missâ_fw-la christus_fw-la dominus_fw-la qui_fw-la seipsum_fw-la aliquando_fw-la in_o corpore_fw-la svo_fw-la mortali_fw-la deo_fw-la patri_fw-la coelesti_fw-la cruentum_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la pro_fw-la peccatis_fw-la mundi_fw-la obtulit_fw-la denuo_fw-la totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nomine_fw-la modo_fw-la incruento_fw-la spirituali_fw-la representatione_n &_o commemoratione_n sacratissimae_fw-la suae_fw-la passionis_fw-la offertur_fw-la quod_fw-la ipsum_fw-la fit_a quando_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christum_fw-la &_o eius_fw-la verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la verumque_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la deo_fw-la patri_fw-la cum_fw-la gratiarum_fw-la actione_n &_o oratione_fw-la attentâ_fw-la pro_fw-la suis_fw-la &_o totius_fw-la mundi_fw-la peccatis_fw-la proponit_fw-la seu_fw-la repraesentat_fw-la quanquam_fw-la enim_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la illud_fw-la in_fw-la eâ_fw-la formâ_fw-la quâ_fw-la in_o cruse_n offerebatur_fw-la semel_fw-la tantum_fw-la oblatum_n sit_fw-la &_o semel_fw-la tantum_fw-la sanguis_fw-la effusus_fw-la ut_fw-la ita_fw-la repeti_fw-la iterumque_fw-la offerri_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la nihilominus_fw-la tamen_fw-la consistit_fw-la &_o manet_fw-la tale_n sacrificium_fw-la coram_fw-la deo_fw-la perpetuò_fw-la in_o suâ_fw-la virtute_fw-la &_o efficaciâ_fw-la acceptum_fw-la ita_fw-la ut_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la illud_fw-la in_o cruse_a oblatum_n non_fw-la minus_fw-la hodierno_fw-la die_fw-la in_o conspectu_fw-la patris_fw-la sit_fw-la efficax_n &_o vigens_fw-la quam_fw-la eo_fw-la die_fw-la quo_fw-la de_fw-la saucio_fw-la latere_fw-la sanguis_fw-la exivit_fw-la &_o aqua_fw-la quapropter_fw-la cum_fw-la vulnerati_fw-la corporis_fw-la nostri_fw-la plagae_fw-la pretio_fw-la redemptionis_fw-la semper_fw-la opus_fw-la habeant_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la proponit_fw-la deo_fw-la patri_fw-la pretium_fw-la illud_fw-la in_fw-la verâ_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o devotione_fw-la iterum_fw-la sed_fw-la figuratiuè_fw-fr &_o spiritualitèr_fw-la ad_fw-la consequendam_fw-la remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la huic_fw-la operi_fw-la svo_fw-la quo_fw-la videlicet_fw-la commem_fw-la or_o at_o &_o repraesentat_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la illius_fw-la meritum_fw-la ascribat_fw-la remissionis_fw-la peceatorum_fw-la ut_fw-la quam_fw-la solus_fw-la christus_fw-la cruentâ_fw-la suâ_fw-la oblatione_fw-la in_o cruse_n nobis_fw-la promeruit_fw-la verum_fw-la tali_fw-la svo_fw-la commemorativo_fw-la &_o mystico_fw-la fidei_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la repraesentat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o sistit_fw-la in_o conspectum_fw-la patris_fw-la verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la eius_fw-la unigeniti_fw-la applicat_fw-la sibi_fw-la &_o accommodat_fw-la magnum_fw-la illud_fw-la donatiwm_fw-la remissionis_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la quod_fw-la christus_fw-la impetravit_fw-la cum_fw-la accipiat_fw-la remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la per_fw-la nomen_fw-la eius_fw-la qui_fw-la credit_n in_fw-la eum_fw-la act._n 10._o that_o be_v so_o soon_o as_o the_o consecration_n be_v do_v in_o the_o mass_n christ_n the_o lord_n who_o sometime_o offer_v himself_o in_o his_o mortal_a body_n a_o bloody_a sacrifice_n to_o god_n his_o heavenly_a father_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v now_o offer_v again_o after_o a_o unbloudy_a manner_n by_o representation_n and_o commemoration_n of_o his_o most_o sacred_a passion_n which_o thing_n be_v then_o do_v when_o the_o church_n do_v propose_v and_o represent_v christ_n and_o his_o true_a body_n '_o and_o blood_n to_o god_n the_o father_n with_o thanksgiving_n and_o with_o earnest_a prayer_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o although_o that_o sacrifice_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o it_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o cross_n be_v offer_v only_o once_o and_o his_o blood_n only_o once_o pour_v forth_o so_o that_o he_o can_v no_o more_o be_v so_o offer_v yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o sacrifice_n remain_v and_o abide_v before_o god_n perpetual_o in_o its_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n and_o be_v so_o acceptable_a unto_o he_o that_o be_v but_o once_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n it_o be_v no_o less_o effectual_a and_o of_o force_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n to_o day_n than_o it_o be_v that_o day_n when_o water_n and_o blood_n stream_v out_o of_o his_o wound_a side_n wherefore_o see_v the_o soar_v and_o hurt_v of_o our_o wound_a body_n have_v always_o need_v of_o the_o price_n of_o redemption_n the_o church_n propose_v to_o god_n in_o faith_n and_o devotion_n that_o price_n again_o but_o figurative_o and_o spiritual_o to_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n not_o as_o if_o she_o do_v ascribe_v to_o this_o her_o work_n whereby_o she_o commemorate_v and_o represent_v that_o his_o sacrifice_n the_o merit_v of_o
remission_n of_o sin_n which_o christ_n only_o merit_v for_o we_o by_o his_o bloody_a sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n but_o by_o such_o her_o commemorative_n and_o mystical_a sacrifice_n of_o faith_n in_o which_o she_o represent_v and_o set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n the_o father_n the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o only_o beget_v son_n she_o apply_v to_o herself_o that_o great_a donative_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n which_o christ_n obtain_v it_o be_v so_o that_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o his_o name_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o 10_o of_o the_o acts._n 1●…7_n in_o the_o book_n propose_v by_o charles_n the_o 5_o write_v by_o certain_a learned_a and_o godly_a man_n much_o commend_v to_o he_o by_o man_n worthy_a to_o be_v credit_v as_o open_v a_o way_n for_o the_o compose_n of_o the_o controversy_n in_o religion_n we_o shall_v find_v the_o same_o explication_n of_o this_o point_n touch_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o i_o have_v already_o deliver_v out_o of_o the_o former_a author_n the_o word_n be_v these_o omnis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la missam_fw-la in_o qu●…_n verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o verus_fw-la sanguis_fw-la christi_fw-la conficitur_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la esse_fw-la consentit_fw-la sed_fw-la incruentum_fw-la &_o spiritual_fw-la in_fw-la eâ_fw-la enim_fw-la modò_fw-la religiosé_fw-fr &_o piè_fw-la agatur_fw-la deo_fw-la quatuor_fw-la spiritualiter_fw-la offeruntur_fw-la initio_fw-la enim_fw-la christus_fw-la qui_fw-la seipsum_fw-la patri_fw-la in_o mortali_fw-la corpore_fw-la cruentam_fw-la sufficientem_fw-la &_o beneplacentem_fw-la pro_fw-la totius_fw-la mundi_fw-la peccatis_fw-la hostiam_fw-la cruci_fw-la affixus_fw-la obtulit_fw-la idem_fw-la ille_fw-la in_o missâ_fw-la totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nomine_fw-la repraesentativo_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la eidem_fw-la deo_fw-la patri_fw-la immolatur_fw-la quod_fw-la certè_fw-la fit_a cum_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la illum_fw-la eiusque_fw-la verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la deo_fw-la patri_fw-la pro_fw-la totius_fw-la mundi_fw-la peccatis_fw-la piâ_fw-la prece_fw-la sistit_fw-la nam_fw-la etsi_fw-la oblatio_fw-la illa_fw-la in_o cruse_n semel_fw-la facta_fw-la transiit_fw-la non_fw-la reiterabilis_fw-la victima_fw-la tamen_fw-la ipsa_fw-la immolata_fw-la perpetuá_fw-la virtute_fw-la consistit_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la hodiè_fw-la in_o conspectu_fw-la patris_fw-la oblatio_fw-la illa_fw-la in_fw-la iis_fw-la qui_fw-la eum_fw-la deo_fw-la religiosa_fw-la fide_fw-la repraesentant_fw-la sit_fw-la efficax_n quam_fw-la eo_fw-la die_fw-la quo_fw-la de_fw-la sacro_fw-la latere_fw-la sanguis_fw-la &_o aqua_fw-la exivit_fw-la in_o quam_fw-la sententiam_fw-la patres_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la praesentia_fw-la nunc_fw-la pretium_fw-la pro_fw-la peccatis_fw-la totius_fw-la mundi_fw-la nunc_fw-la pretium_fw-la redemptionis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la nunc_fw-la victimam_fw-la salutarem_fw-la appellare_fw-la consueverunt_fw-la et_fw-la chrysostomus_n testatur_fw-la nos_fw-la eandem_fw-la hostiam_fw-la quae_fw-la semel_fw-la oblata_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la sancta_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la semper_fw-la offer_n at_o que_fw-la unum_fw-la esse_fw-la utrobique_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la unum_fw-la christum_fw-la &_o hic_fw-la plenum_fw-la existentem_fw-la &_o illic_fw-la plenum_fw-la sic_fw-la tamen_fw-la ut_fw-la quod_fw-la nos_fw-la agimus_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la exemplar_n sit_fw-la illius_fw-la in_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la eius_fw-la quod_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la semel_fw-la nec_fw-la ab_fw-la re_fw-la deus_fw-la enim_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la donavit_fw-la nobis_fw-la christum_fw-la jesum_fw-la filium_fw-la suum_fw-la ut_fw-la de_fw-la nostris_fw-la viribus_fw-la diffisi_fw-la ●…deque_fw-la nostris_fw-la peccatis_fw-la nobis_fw-la probè_fw-la conscii_fw-la illum_fw-la tanquam_fw-la unicam_fw-la &_o potissimam_fw-la victimam_fw-la pro_fw-la nostris_fw-la peccatis_fw-la satisfactoriam_fw-la deo_fw-la patri_fw-la repraesentemus_fw-la ipse_fw-la enim_fw-la natus_fw-la est_fw-la ipse_fw-la datus_fw-la est_fw-la nobis_fw-la ut_fw-la quicunque_fw-la in_o eum_fw-la credimus_fw-la non_fw-la pereamus_fw-la sed_fw-la pacem_fw-la cum_fw-la deo_fw-la reconciliati_fw-la per_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la eius_fw-la habeamus_fw-la secundò_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la missae_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la seipsam_fw-la quoque_fw-la quatenus_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la mysticum_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la christum_fw-la deo_fw-la offer_n non_fw-la dubitat_fw-la tertiò_fw-la in_o missâ_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la laudis_fw-la offertur_fw-la postremo_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la &_o dona_fw-la quaedam_fw-la tam_fw-la panis_fw-la quam_fw-la vini_fw-la ex_fw-la quibus_fw-la partim_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o san●…uis_fw-la christi_fw-la conficiebantur_fw-la offerebat_fw-la partim_fw-la &_o eleemosynae_fw-la fiebant_fw-la &_o iustum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la populus_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la se_fw-la non_fw-la tantum_fw-la verbis_fw-la deo_fw-la consecret_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o symbolo_fw-la aliquo_fw-la externo_fw-la testetur_fw-la quod_fw-la se_fw-la totum_fw-la dedicet_fw-la deo_fw-la nam_n be_v mos_fw-la in_o ecclesiis_fw-la penè_fw-la abolitus_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la olim_fw-la omnibus_fw-la diebus_fw-la dominicis_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o vinum_fw-la &_o res_fw-la aliae_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la tum_fw-la viris_fw-la tum_fw-la mulieribus_fw-la ad_fw-la altar_n offerebantur_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la decreta_fw-la quae_fw-la fabiano_n tribuuntur_fw-la testantnr_fw-la that_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n do_v consent_n that_o the_o mass_n in_o which_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v to_o become_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n but_o unbloudy_a and_o spiritual_a for_o in_o it_o if_o it_o be_v godly_a and_o religious_o celebrate_v four_o thing_n be_v spiritual_o offer_v unto_o god_n for_o first_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v fasten_v to_o the_o cross_n offer_v himself_o to_o his_o father_n in_o his_o mortal_a body_n a_o bloody_a sufficient_a and_o well_o please_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v in_o the_o mass_n offer_v to_o the_o same_o god_n his_o father_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o a_o representative_a oblation_n which_o thing_n true_o be_v then_o do_v when_o the_o church_n pious_o to_o entreat_v mercy_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n present_v he_o and_o his_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n to_o god_n the_o father_n for_o although_o that_o oblation_n that_o be_v once_o make_v on_o the_o cross_n be_v past_a and_o can_v be_v reiterated_a yet_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v then_o sacrifice_v and_o offer_v abide_v have_v a_o never_o fail_a virtue_n and_o efficacy_n so_o that_o that_o oblation_n in_o they_o that_o by_o a_o religious_a faith_n do_v represent_v it_o unto_o god_n be_v no_o less_o effectual_a and_o prevail_a to_o procure_v they_o favour_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n than_o it_o be_v that_o day_n that_o water_n and_o blood_n stream_v out_o of_o his_o sacred_a side_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o father_n be_v wont_n sometime_o to_o call_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n present_a on_o the_o altar_n the_o price_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n sometime_o the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n sometime_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o bring_v salvation_n and_o chrysostome_n witness_v that_o we_o continual_o and_o daily_o offer_v the_o same_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v once_o offer_v and_o present_v into_o the_o holy_a of_o all_o and_o that_o both_o there_o and_o here_o there_o be_v one_o sacrifice_n one_o christ_n perfect_a here_o and_o perfect_a there_o yet_o so_o that_o that_o which_o we_o do_v be_v but_o a_o representation_n and_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v once_o there_o do_v and_o this_o not_o unfit_o for_o therefore_o do_v god_n give_v we_o christ_n jesus_n his_o son_n that_o distrust_v our_o own_o strength_n and_o be_v guilty_a to_o ourselves_o of_o many_o sin_n we_o may_v represent_v and_o set_v he_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n the_o father_n as_o the_o only_a and_o most_o excellent_a satisfactory_a sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n for_o he_o be_v bear_v and_o he_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o that_o whosoever_o of_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o may_v not_o perish_v but_o may_v have_v peace_n with_o god_n be_v reconcile_v by_o his_o blood_n second_o the_o church_n in_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n doubt_v not_o to_o offer_v itself_o as_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n unto_o god_n by_o christ._n three_o in_o it_o be_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n last_o the_o church_n be_v wont_a to_o offer_v certain_a gift_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n out_o of_o which_o some_o part_n be_v consecrate_v to_o become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o faithful_a people_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v give_v in_o alm_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o true_o it_o be_v very_o just_a and_o right_a that_o the_o people_n in_o this_o sacrifice_n shall_v not_o consecrate_v themselves_o to_o god_n in_o word_n only_o but_o so_o as_o to_o testify_v by_o some_o outward_a symbol_n that_o they_o whole_o dedicate_v themselves_o to_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o well_o that_o this_o custom_n be_v almost_o utter_o abolish_v whereas_o ancient_o every_o lord_n day_n bread_n and_o wine_n and_o other_o thing_n be_v offer_v on_o the_o altar_n both_o by_o man_n and_o woman_n as_o the_o decree_n attribute_v to_o pope_n fabian_n do_v testify_v after_o this_o follow_v these_o word_n in_o the_o same_o place_n
of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o ministry_n whereof_o they_o be_v appoint_v and_o not_o from_o the_o word_n of_o form_n as_o the_o other_o do_v hence_o also_o it_o come_v that_o they_o be_v variable_a both_o in_o their_o matter_n and_o form_n the_o apostle_n say_v alexander_n of_o hales_n confirm_v with_o the_o only_a imposition_n of_o their_o hand_n without_o any_o certain_a form_n of_o word_n or_o outward_a matter_n or_o element_n but_o afterward_o it_o be_v otherwise_o ordain_v both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o the_o form_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n be_v keep_v inviolable_o without_o all_o change_n but_o touch_v the_o word_n of_o form_n to_o be_v use_v in_o any_o other_o of_o the_o suppose_a sacrament_n there_o be_v no_o certainty_n but_o they_o be_v diverse_o and_o doubtful_o desiver_v the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v because_o they_o be_v of_o humane_a devise_v by_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o other_o pretend_a sacrament_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n as_o even_o 9_o bellarmin_n himself_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v the_o sacred_a or_o holy_a thing_n say_v he_o which_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n signify_v be_v threefold_a the_o grace_n of_o justification_n the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o eternal_a life_n as_o thomas_n teach_v touch_v baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n the_o thing_n be_v most_o evident_a concern_v the_o other_o it_o be_v not_o so_o certain_a chap._n 16._o of_o the_o be_v of_o one_o body_n in_o many_o place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n the_o possibility_n of_o the_o be_v of_o one_o body_n in_o many_o place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n be_v ever_o deny_v by_o many_o worthy_a member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o the_o local_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n whether_o definitive_a or_o circumscriptive_a be_v likewise_o reject_v as_o a_o thing_n impossible_a to_o affirm_v say_v 2._o aquinas_n that_o one_o body_n may_v be_v local_o in_o this_o place_n and_o yet_o also_o in_o another_o at_o the_o same_o time_n imply_v a_o contradiction_n and_o therefore_o the_o power_n of_o god_n extend_v not_o to_o the_o effect_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n 2._o scotus_n confess_v that_o egidius_n godfredus_n the_o font_n alanus_n and_o henricus_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o thomas_n 11._o durandus_fw-la say_v that_o which_o be_v present_a in_o one_o place_n definitive_o or_o circumscriptive_o can_v in_o any_o such_o sort_n be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n whereupon_o he_o pronounce_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v no_o otherwise_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o by_o reason_n of_o a_o certain_a habitudinary_a union_n between_o it_o and_o the_o sacramental_a element_n whence_o it_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v personaliter_fw-la in_o verbo_fw-la localiter_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la sacramentaliter_fw-la in_o eucharistia_n personal_o in_o the_o eternal_a word_n local_o in_o heaven_n sacramental_o in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o first_o that_o teach_v otherwise_o and_o bring_v in_o the_o local_a presence_n be_v scotus_n who_o 4._o occam_n follow_v though_o he_o deny_v not_o but_o the_o former_a opinion_n have_v great_a favourer_n chap_n 17._o of_o transubstantiation_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n all_o of_o we_o say_v 1._o cajetan_v do_v teach_v in_o word_n but_o in_o deed_n many_o deny_v it_o think_v nothing_o less_o these_o be_v diverse_o divide_v one_o from_o another_o for_o some_o by_o the_o conversion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n understand_v nothing_o but_o identity_n of_o place_n that_o be_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o where_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n become_v present_a also_o other_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n conversion_n nothing_o else_o but_o the_o order_n of_o succession_n that_o be_v that_o the_o body_n succee_v and_o be_v under_o the_o veil_n of_o those_o accident_n under_o which_o the_o bread_n which_o they_o think_v to_o be_v annihilate_v be_v before_o this_o opinion_n in_o substance_n scotus_n follow_v though_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o speech_n he_o seem_v to_o decline_v it_o some_o admit_v both_o the_o word_n and_o thing_n but_o yet_o not_o whole_o but_o only_o in_o part_n as_o durandus_fw-la 2._o bonaventura_n say_v that_o some_o see_v the_o accident_n to_o remain_v both_o in_o their_o be_v and_o operation_n think_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n still_o remain_v other_o the_o form_n but_o that_o the_o more_o catholic_a or_o general_a opinion_n be_v that_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o element_n be_v turn_v into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n we_o see_v he_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v but_o a_o opinion_n 39_o occam_n say_v there_o be_v three_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o which_o the_o first_o suppose_v a_o coversion_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n the_o second_o a_o annihilation_n the_o three_o affirm_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v in_o such_o sort_n transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n change_v in_o substance_n or_o substantial_o convert_v into_o christ_n body_n or_o do_v cease_v to_o be_v but_o only_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o every_o part_n of_o it_o become_v present_a in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o bread_n this_o opinion_n he_o say_v the_o master_n of_o sentence_n mention_v not_o much_o dislike_a it_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o common_o hold_v 6._o cameracensis_n say_v that_o the_o more_o common_a opinion_n be_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v not_o remain_v but_o whole_o cease_v and_o that_o though_o this_o opinion_n be_v not_o evident_o deduce_v from_o the_o scripture_n nor_o conclude_v out_o of_o any_o determination_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o aught_o he_o can_v see_v yet_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o follow_v it_o 43._o waldensis_n say_v he_o find_v in_o a_o certain_a old_a book_n of_o decree_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1049._o there_o be_v a_o meeting_n of_o archbishop_n bishop_n and_o other_o religious_a person_n in_o a_o synod_n and_o that_o when_o they_o be_v come_v together_o they_o begin_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n some_o say_v one_o thing_n some_o another_o but_o that_o before_o the_o three_o day_n of_o meeting_n they_o that_o deny_v the_o substantial_a conversion_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n be_v silent_a 19_o but_o in_o the_o same_o book_n he_o report_v out_o of_o christopolitanus_fw-la zacharias_n his_o book_n entitle_v quatuor_fw-la unum_fw-la that_o there_o be_v some_o perhaps_o many_o but_o hardly_o to_o be_v discern_v and_o note_v that_o think_v still_o as_o berengarius_fw-la do_v who_o they_o then_o condemn_v and_o yet_o condemn_v he_o with_o the_o rest_n in_o this_o respect_n only_o dislike_a he_o for_o that_o refuse_v the_o form_n of_o word_n the_o church_n use_v with_o the_o nakedness_n of_o his_o manner_n of_o speak_v he_o give_v offence_n not_o follow_v the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o every_o where_o call_v thing_n that_o be_v sign_n by_o the_o name_n of_o thing_n signify_v especial_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o sacrament_n the_o more_o lively_a to_o express_v their_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n these_o man_n cease_v not_o to_o charge_v other_o secret_o that_o they_o know_v not_o the_o nature_n of_o figurative_a speech_n &_o therefore_o not_o without_o gross_a error_n kill_v the_o soul_n take_v sign_n for_o the_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sign_n scorn_v not_o a_o little_a the_o folly_n of_o they_o that_o say_v the_o appear_a accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o the_o conversion_n do_v hang_v in_o the_o air_n or_o that_o the_o sense_n be_v deceive_v in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o say_v that_o guitmundus_n report_v some_o other_o that_o be_v not_o of_o the_o faction_n of_o berengarius_fw-la but_o with_o great_a vehementie_n contrary_a and_o opposite_a unto_o he_o to_o have_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o part_n be_v change_v and_o in_o part_n remain_v these_o suppose_v so_o much_o only_o to_o be_v change_v as_o be_v to_o serve_v for_o the_o communicate_v of_o the_o worthy_a receiver_n other_o think_v the_o whole_a to_o be_v change_v but_o that_o when_o unworthy_a man_n come_v to_o communicate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n cease_v to_o be_v present_a and_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n return_v and_o be_v there_o present_a to_o be_v receive_v by_o they_o but_o that_o it_o may_v yet_o more_o clear_o appear_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n never_o pass_v current_o in_o the_o church_n let_v we_o add_v another_o testimony_n
such_o as_o be_v ordain_v by_o heretic_n be_v true_o ordain_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o 2._o adversary_n themselves_o but_o if_o all_o fail_v he_o will_v go_v back_o to_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o have_v make_v he_o dead_a while_o he_o be_v alive_a and_o will_v prove_v that_o 70._o bernard_n confute_v henricus_n impugn_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a with_o a_o miracle_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o impugn_v of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v pronounce_v impious_a by_o god_n own_o voice_n from_o heaven_n sure_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o god_n give_v testimony_n by_o a_o miracle_n against_o henricus_n his_o impugn_v of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a to_o deliver_v they_o out_o of_o purgatory_n it_o be_v something_o but_o neither_o he_o nor_o all_o the_o rabble_n of_o romanistes_n shall_v ever_o prove_v that_o henricus_n be_v report_v to_o have_v hold_v many_o damnable_a opinion_n in_o confutation_n whereof_o bernard_n may_v work_v a_o miracle_n without_o any_o respect_n to_o his_o deny_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a for_o he_o contemn_v the_o sacrament_n deny_v reconciliation_n to_o penitent_n &_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n to_o such_o as_o in_o their_o great_a distress_n desire_v the_o same_o and_o fear_v not_o to_o exclude_v infant_n from_o the_o benefitte_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o regeneration_n 24●…_n bernard_n himself_o describe_v he_o and_o the_o good_a effect_n that_o follow_v his_o preach_n show_v that_o have_v be_v a_o monk_n he_o become_v a_o apostata_fw-la that_o he_o give_v himself_o to_o all_o impurity_n and_o that_o what_o he_o get_v by_o his_o preach_n he_o play_v away_o at_o dice_n or_o spend_v it_o among_o harlot_n that_o his_o preach_v wrought_v so_o good_a effect_n that_o church_n be_v forsake_v and_o leave_v without_o people_n people_n without_o priest_n priest_n without_o due_a reverence_n and_o christian_n without_o christ_n church_n be_v repute_v synagogue_n the_o sanctuary_n of_o god_n deny_v to_o be_v holy_a sacrament_n account_v unholy_a festival_n day_n deprive_v of_o festival_n solemnity_n man_n die_v in_o their_o sin_n and_o their_o soul_n be_v every_o where_o catch_v up_o and_o bring_v to_o the_o terrible_a judgement-seat_n neither_o reconcile_v by_o penitential_a reconciliation_n nor_o guard_v with_o the_o sacrament_n and_o holy_a communion_n that_o the_o way_n of_o the_o life_n of_o christ_n be_v shut_v uppe_o against_o infant_n while_o the_o grace_n of_o baptism_n be_v deny_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v hinder_v from_o draw_v near_o to_o salvation_n though_o the_o saviour_n himself_o cry_v out_o aloud_o for_o they_o say_v suffer_v little_a child_n to_o come_v unto_o i_o this_o be_v all_o that_o bernard_n impute_v to_o he_o neither_o do_v willielmus_fw-la abbas_n as_o master_n 72._o higgon_n untrue_o report_v charge_v he_o with_o deny_v of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a but_o one_o 5._o gotefrey_n a_o monk_n of_o claravallis_n who_o report_n be_v not_o great_o to_o be_v regard_v because_o what_o he_o add_v above_o that_o before_o allege_v by_o we_o touch_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a invocation_n of_o saint_n excommunication_n of_o priest_n pilgrimage_n build_v of_o church_n and_o the_o like_a he_o add_v as_o out_o of_o bernard_n epistle_n before_o mention_v wherein_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n so_o that_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o he_o mistake_v the_o matter_n and_o impute_v such_o thing_n to_o henricus_n as_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o apostolici_fw-la or_o some_o other_o such_o like_a hitherto_o we_o find_v no_o great_a proof_n of_o the_o confirmation_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a or_o any_o other_o point_n of_o popish_a error_n by_o miracle_n so_o that_o my_o peremptory_a denial_n that_o ever_o any_o miracle_n be_v do_v by_o any_o man_n in_o time_n past_a or_o in_o our_o time_n to_o comfirme_v any_o of_o the_o thing_n controverse_v between_o the_o papist_n and_o we_o stand_v as_o yet_o uncontrolled_a wherefore_o master_n higgon_n rise_v from_o henricus_n to_o gregory_n the_o first_o and_o augustine_n who_o he_o send_v into_o england_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o our_o nation_n who_o he_o 82._o say_v be_v papist_n and_o yet_o wrought_v many_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n they_o preach_v a_o more_o trifle_a fellow_n i_o think_v never_o adventure_v to_o put_v pen_n to_o paper_n for_o we_o confident_o deny_v that_o either_o gregory_n or_o augustine_n be_v papist_n &_o say_v with_o bishop_n jewel_n in_o his_o worthy_a challenge_n that_o all_o the_o learned_a papist_n in_o the_o world_n can_v prove_v they_o either_o of_o they_o hold_v any_o of_o those_o twenty_o seven_o article_n of_o popish_a religion_n mention_v by_o he_o if_o some_o superstition_n begin_v in_o their_o time_n to_o grow_v in_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvel_v at_o neither_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o if_o augustine_n and_o his_o colleague_n send_v hither_o to_o sing_v the_o lord_n song_n in_o a_o strange_a land_n do_v miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n teach_v by_o they_o that_o the_o same_o miracle_n confirm_v every_o superstitious_a opinion_n which_o any_o of_o they_o hold_v for_o than_o cyprian_a and_o the_o african_a bishop_n teach_v rebaptisation_n the_o oriental_a bishop_n thitk_v it_o necessary_a to_o keep_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n with_o the_o jew_n papias_n and_o all_o the_o worthy_a father_n that_o teach_v that_o christ_n raise_v up_o the_o saint_n from_o the_o dead_a shall_v reign_v with_o they_o on_o earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n in_o all_o earthly_a felicity_n that_o there_o be_v two_o resurrection_n the_o one_o of_o the_o just_a the_o other_o of_o the_o wicked_a and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o year_n between_o lactantius_n irenaeus_n and_o other_o exclude_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a depart_v out_o of_o heaven_n till_o the_o resurrection_n such_o as_o hold_v that_o man_n may_v be_v deliver_v out_o of_o hell_n such_o as_o hold_v it_o necessary_a to_o minister_v the_o communion_n to_o infant_n and_o other_o like_a catholic_a christian_n err_v in_o some_o point_n of_o doctrine_n can_v do_v no_o miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n among_o infidel_n or_o misbelievers_a but_o that_o the_o same_o must_v be_v confirmation_n of_o their_o error_n &_o god_n must_v concur_v with_o they_o by_o confusion_n as_o this_o confuse_a companion_n 83._o speak_v but_o if_o this_o instance_n serve_v not_o the_o turn_n he_o have_v another_o evidence_n more_o potent_a and_o persuasive_a which_o serve_v as_o a_o key_n to_o unlock_v his_o understanding_n and_o that_o be_v this_o 85._o transubstantiation_n be_v affirm_v by_o i_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o popish_a religion_n gerson_n be_v high_o approve_a by_o i_o and_o yet_o he_o affirm_v christi_fw-la that_o transubstantiation_n be_v confirm_v by_o a_o thousand_o and_o a_o thousand_o miracle_n for_o answer_v whereunto_o we_o say_v with_o cassander_n transub_v that_o the_o name_n of_o conversion_n transmutation_n trans-formation_n and_o trans-elementation_a be_v find_v among_o the_o ancient_a and_o that_o the_o word_n transubstantiation_n be_v use_v some_o hundred_o of_o year_n since_o but_o touch_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o conversion_n there_o be_v great_a variety_n of_o opinion_n yet_o so_o that_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o they_o understand_v such_o a_o mutation_n or_o change_n to_o be_v make_v that_o that_o which_o before_o be_v earthly_a and_o common_a bread_n by_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n the_o invocation_n of_o god_n name_n and_o divine_a virtue_n be_v make_v a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n visible_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n and_o yet_o after_o a_o invisible_a and_o incomprehensible_a manner_n present_a in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o exhibit_v and_o give_v as_o spiritual_a meat_n and_o drink_v for_o the_o salvation_n and_o everlasting_a life_n of_o they_o that_o be_v worthy_a partaker_n of_o the_o same_o thus_o much_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o a_o thousand_o and_o a_o thousand_o miracle_n may_v confirm_v and_o more_o gerson_n do_v not_o say_v be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n for_o whereas_o there_o be_v almost_o infinite_a variety_n of_o opinion_n touch_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o conversion_n among_o such_o as_o admit_v it_o in_o generality_n it_o will_v be_v very_o hard_o for_o master_n higgon_n or_o a_o wise_a man_n than_o he_o be_v to_o say_v which_o of_o they_o any_o miracle_n ever_o confirm_v all_o admit_v say_v 1._o caietan_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o truth_n many_o deny_v that_o which_o the_o word_n transubstantiation_n indeed_o import_v &_o therefore_o be_v diverse_o divide_v
some_o understanding_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o where_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n become_v present_a other_o understanding_n nothing_o but_o the_o order_n of_o succession_n whereby_o the_o body_n succee_v &_o be_v under_o the_o veil_n of_o those_o accident_n under_o which_o the_o bread_n which_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v annihilate_v be_v before_o which_o opinion_n in_o substance_n scotus_n follow_v though_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o speech_n he_o seem_v to_o decline_v it_o some_o admit_v both_o the_o word_n and_o thing_n not_o whole_o but_o in_o part_n as_o durandus_fw-la who_o think_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n remain_v the_o form_n only_o change_v &_o some_o think_v the_o form_n to_o remain_v and_o the_o matter_n to_o cease_v 39_o ockam_n say_v there_o be_v 3_o opinion_n touch_v transubstantiation_n of_o which_o the_o first_o suppose_v a_o conversion_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n the_o second_o a_o annihilation_n the_o three_o make_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v so_o turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n change_v in_o substance_n or_o substantial_o convert_v into_o christ_n body_n but_o that_o only_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n become_v present_a in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o bread_n 6._o cameracensis_n gersons_n master_n profess_v that_o for_o aught_o he_o can_v see_v the_o substantial_a conversion_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n into_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v prove_v either_o out_o of_o scripture_n or_o any_o determination_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o make_v it_o but_o a_o matter_n of_o opinion_n incline_v rather_o to_o the_o other_o opinion_n of_o con-substantiation_a and_o therefore_o in_o his_o judgement_n it_o be_v not_o witness_v by_o a_o thousand_o &_o a_o thousand_o person_n of_o most_o holy_a life_n and_o profound_a knowledge_n testify_v the_o truth_n thereof_o unto_o death_n by_o a_o thousand_o &_o a_o thousand_o miracle_n so_o that_o the_o thing_n which_o gerson_n say_v have_v be_v prove_v by_o miracle_n be_v the_o true_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o exhibition_n of_o they_o to_o be_v the_o food_n of_o oursoule_n &_o such_o a_o change_n of_o the_o element_n in_o virtue_n grace_n &_o power_n of_o contain_v in_o they_o &_o communicate_v to_o we_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n as_o the_o nature_n of_o so_o excellent_a a_o sacrament_n require_v this_o be_v the_o 83._o key_n which_o m._n higgon_n find_v to_o unlock_v his_o understanding_n that_o it_o may_v run_v riot_n into_o all_o idle_a &_o childish_a discourse_n but_o see_v the_o infelicity_n of_o the_o man_n he_o be_v no_o soon_o at_o liberty_n but_o present_o again_o he_o be_v encompass_v &_o bring_v into_o such_o a_o strait_a that_o either_o he_o must_v disclaim_v my_o book_n or_o his_o protestanticall_a belief_n yet_o 86_o do_v he_o not_o suffer_v himself_o long_o to_o be_v so_o enclose_v but_o full_a wise_o choose_v rather_o to_o forsake_v the_o religion_n he_o be_v breed_v in_o and_o which_o as_o a_o public_a preacher_n he_o have_v teach_v other_o then_o to_o disclaim_v my_o book_n because_o as_o he_o say_v that_o religion_n can_v be_v good_a that_o be_v so_o false_o and_o absurd_o defend_v by_o i_o and_o all_o the_o chief_a author_n that_o ever_o apply_v their_o pain_n unto_o that_o service_n sure_o the_o poor_a fugitive_n be_v great_o to_o be_v pity_v as_o weak_a in_o understanding_n and_o meddle_v with_o thing_n not_o fit_v for_o he_o if_o he_o do_v that_o he_o do_v in_o simplicity_n or_o exceed_o to_o be_v detest_v as_o a_o graceless_a person_n if_o he_o do_v it_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v out_o of_o malice_n for_o what_o be_v it_o in_o my_o book_n that_o be_v so_o false_a and_o absurd_a as_o that_o the_o consideration_n thereof_o shall_v make_v a_o man_n forsake_v his_o religion_n be_v not_o transubstantiation_n one_o of_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o popish_a religion_n as_o i_o have_v say_v be_v that_o false_o deliver_v by_o i_o no_o but_o i_o say_v no_o miracle_n be_v ever_o do_v to_o confirm_v any_o thing_n defend_v by_o the_o romanistes_n against_o we_o and_o yet_o gerson_n high_o commend_v by_o i_o sai_z many_o miracle_n have_v be_v wrought_v for_o proof_n and_o confirmation_n of_o that_o transubstantiation_n which_o the_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n believe_v and_o this_o be_v the_o falsity_n and_o absurdity_n he_o speak_v of_o that_o no_o miracle_n be_v ever_o wrought_v to_o prove_v the_o monstrous_a conceit_n of_o popish_a transubstantiation_n or_o any_o other_o popish_a error_n shall_v stand_v good_a when_o heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o and_o if_o ten_o thousand_o gerson_n nay_o if_o so_o many_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v affirm_v the_o contrary_a i_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o much_o less_o gerson_n a_o single_a witness_n in_o such_o a_o case_n this_o be_v then_o the_o absurdity_n that_o make_v he_o become_v a_o papist_n that_o i_o commend_v gerson_n and_o yet_o believe_v not_o everthe_v he_o say_v true_o this_o absurdity_n will_v never_o move_v any_o but_o a_o absurd_a smatterer_n to_o alter_v his_o religion_n for_o do_v not_o higgon_n himself_o admire_v pighius_fw-la catharinus_n contarenus_n and_o sundry_a other_o from_o who_o he_o dissent_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n original_a sin_n and_o the_o certainty_n of_o grace_n do_v he_o not_o high_o commend_v many_o that_o think_v the_o pope_n may_v err_v that_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o general_n counsel_n and_o may_v be_v depose_v by_o they_o not_o for_o heresy_n alone_o but_o for_o other_o enormous_a crime_n also_o and_o yet_o i_o think_v he_o will_v not_o be_v of_o their_o opinion_n so_o that_o though_o gerson_n shall_v think_v that_o the_o transubstantiation_n which_o we_o deny_v be_v prove_v by_o miracle_n it_o be_v no_o such_o intolerable_a absurdity_n to_o commend_v he_o for_o much_o piety_n devotion_n learning_n and_o virtue_n and_o yet_o to_o dissent_v from_o he_o in_o this_o point_n in_o the_o matter_n controverse_v in_o former_a time_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n touch_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v there_o not_o whorthy_a man_n on_o both_o side_n do_v not_o the_o patron_n of_o her_o spotless_a conception_n pretend_v and_o allege_v sundry_a miracle_n and_o vision_n for_o confirmation_n thereof_o yet_o be_v it_o no_o absurdity_n for_o 1._o cardinal_n caietan_n follow_v the_o current_n of_o antiquity_n to_o dissent_v from_o they_o how_o many_o &_o worthy_a soever_o they_o be_v &_o to_o call_v all_o their_o pretend_a miracle_n in_o question_n but_o indeed_o here_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n for_o gerson_n be_v not_o so_o ill_o advise_v as_o to_o dissent_v from_o his_o worthy_a master_n &_o confident_o to_o affirm_v that_o a_o thousand_o and_o a_o thousand_o renown_v for_o piety_n and_o learning_n by_o a_o thousand_o &_o a_o thousand_o miracle_n give_v testimony_n to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n into_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o 11._o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n &_o the_o author_n of_o the_o 11._o ordinary_a gloss_n profess_v to_o be_v doubtful_a and_o caietan_n say_v so_o many_o admit_v not_o even_o in_o his_o time_n but_o the_o only_a thing_n he_o affirm_v to_o have_v be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n be_v that_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n be_v true_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o they_o be_v give_v to_o be_v the_o food_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o that_o the_o outward_a element_n be_v change_v to_o become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o we_o deny_v not_o though_o we_o dissent_v from_o the_o papist_n touch_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o conversion_n which_o they_o imagine_v to_o be_v substantial_a to_o which_o opinion_n haply_o gerson_n may_v consent_v as_o cameracensis_n also_o do_v though_o he_o profess_v he_o can_v not_o see_v the_o deduction_n of_o it_o from_o scripture_n or_o any_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n and_o incline_v rather_o to_o think_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v and_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n become_v present_a together_o with_o they_o according_a to_o that_o of_o cusanus_fw-la ●…25_n who_o say_v certain_a ancient_a divine_n be_v find_v to_o have_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o substantial_o change_v but_o that_o it_o be_v clothe_v upon_o with_o a_o more_o noble_a substance_n as_o we_o hope_v to_o be_v clothe_v upon_o with_o the_o light_n of_o glory_n our_o substance_n remain_v the_o same_o it_o be_v and_o seem_v not_o much_o to_o dislike_v their_o opinion_n thus_o we_o see_v poor_a runagate_n higgon_n have_v make_v a_o great_a outcry_n when_o there_o
make_v partaker_n of_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n or_o be_v already_o partaker_n of_o it_o to_o be_v strengthen_v confirm_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o three_o that_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n present_v to_o our_o consideration_n the_o spiritual_a nourish_a force_n that_o be_v in_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o bolish_v in_o their_o substance_n as_o the_o patron_n of_o transubstantiation_n imagine_v but_o only_o change_v in_o use_n in_o that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o signify_v but_o exhibit_v and_o communicate_v unto_o we_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n with_o all_o the_o gracious_a work_n of_o the_o same_o four_o that_o the_o meaning_n of_o christ_n word_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n be_v this_o which_o outward_o and_o visible_o i_o give_v unto_o you_o be_v in_o substance_n bread_n and_o wine_n and_o in_o mystery_n and_o exhibitive_a signification_n my_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o this_o which_o invisible_o together_o with_o the_o visible_a element_n i_o give_v unto_o you_o be_v my_o very_a body_n that_o be_v crucify_v and_o my_o blood_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o your_o sin_n five_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o the_o sacrament_n do_v not_o signify_v only_o but_o exhibit_v also_o and_o whereof_o the_o faithful_a be_v to_o be_v partaker_n be_v true_o present_a in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n but_o the_o one_o part_n deny_v that_o they_o be_v present_a secundum_fw-la suum_fw-la esse_fw-la naturale_fw-la that_o be_v in_o the_o natural_a be_v or_o be_v of_o essence_n because_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v finite_a and_o have_v finite_a dimension_n can_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n the_o other_o part_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n answer_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v finite_a indeed_o but_o that_o because_o it_o be_v personal_o join_v to_o the_o deity_n it_o be_v wheresoever_o the_o deity_n be_v yet_o do_v not_o they_o of_o this_o part_n say_v it_o be_v every_o where_o localitèr_fw-la but_o repletiuè_fw-fr &_o personalitèr_fw-la that_o be_v not_o local_o but_o repletive_o and_o personal_o which_o distinction_n zanchius_n profess_v he_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v but_o say_v if_o their_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a secundum_fw-la esse_fw-la personale_fw-la that_o be_v in_o that_o be_v of_o divine_a subsistence_n communicate_v to_o it_o whereof_o i_o have_v speak_v before_o they_o say_v true_a and_o contradict_v not_o the_o other_o who_o speak_v of_o the_o natural_a be_v of_o christ_n body_n or_o be_v of_o essence_n and_o not_o of_o existence_n or_o subsistence_n which_o be_v infinite_a and_o divine_a and_o though_o christ_n body_n be_v every_o where_o in_o that_o personal_a be_v as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o any_o where_o else_o present_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o spiritual_a food_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o these_o man_n touch_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o will_v there_o be_v any_o find_v touch_v the_o eat_n of_o it_o for_o whereas_o in_o eat_v there_o be_v imply_v a_o chew_v or_o mastication_n of_o that_o which_o be_v eat_v a_o traiection_n from_o the_o mouth_n into_o the_o stomach_n and_o a_o turn_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o meat_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o eater_n a_o bodily_a eat_n of_o christ_n body_n there_o can_v be_v see_v it_o be_v impassable_a and_o admit_v no_o such_o division_n as_o be_v make_v in_o chew_v and_o beside_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v swallow_v whole_a it_o can_v be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o body_n but_o rather_o turn_v we_o into_o the_o substance_n of_o itself_o so_o that_o there_o be_v only_o a_o spiritual_a eat_n of_o christ_n consist_v in_o that_o chew_a that_o be_v by_o meditation_n upon_o the_o several_a and_o distinct_a thing_n that_o be_v find_v in_o his_o nature_n power_n action_n and_o suffering_n a_o traiection_n from_o the_o understanding_n part_n to_o the_o heart_n and_o a_o incorporation_n of_o the_o believer_n into_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o luther_n and_o some_o other_o do_v teach_v that_o even_o the_o wicked_a do_v in_o a_o sort_n eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n not_o as_o if_o they_o do_v corporal_o touch_v his_o sacred_a body_n much_o less_o tear_n rent_n or_o divide_v it_o with_o their_o tooth_n or_o turn_v it_o into_o their_o substance_n but_o for_o that_o they_o may_v be_v say_v in_o a_o sort_n to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n though_o unprofitable_o and_o to_o their_o condemnation_n in_o that_o they_o true_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n eat_v that_o outward_a substance_n of_o bread_n with_o which_o it_o be_v true_o present_a though_o not_o local_o and_o to_o this_o purpose_n the_o same_o zanchius_n report_v that_o a_o man_n of_o no_o vulgar_a note_n among_o the_o follower_n of_o luther_n do_v not_o fear_v to_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o and_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o we_o eat_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n corporal_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o that_o our_o mouth_n and_o body_n shall_v touch_v his_o sacred_a body_n which_o be_v not_o local_o present_a but_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v eat_v bodily_a only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o sacramental_a union_n attribute_v that_o to_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o proper_o agree_v to_o the_o bread_n with_o which_o the_o body_n be_v present_a these_o thing_n be_v find_v in_o a_o discourse_n of_o zanchius_n entitle_v judicium_fw-la hieronymi_n zanchii_n de_fw-fr dissidio_fw-la caenae_fw-la dominicae_fw-la write_v by_o he_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o a_o bishop_n of_o italy_n at_o the_o request_n and_o entreaty_n of_o paulus_n vergerius_n and_o sturmius_fw-la by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v we_o see_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n in_o judgement_n between_o they_o who_o out_o of_o humane_a frailty_n be_v too_o much_o divide_v in_o affection_n luther_n utter_v many_o thing_n very_o passionate_o against_o zuinglius_fw-la and_o other_o conceave_a that_o they_o make_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v nothing_o but_o only_o note_v distinctive_a serve_v to_o put_v difference_n between_o christian_n and_o such_o as_o be_v no_o christian_n as_o a_o monk_n cowle_n distinguish_v a_o monk_n from_o he_o that_o be_v no_o monk_n or_o empty_a sign_n without_o all_o presence_n of_o grace_n and_o exhibition_n of_o the_o thing_n they_o signify_v but_o if_o he_o have_v full_o understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o he_o be_v so_o violent_o opposite_a unto_o he_o will_v not_o have_v censure_v they_o so_o hardly_o as_o he_o do_v if_o master_n higgon_n have_v ever_o read_v this_o tract_n of_o zanchius_n he_o will_v not_o have_v will_v i_o to_o excogitate_v or_o scan_v out_o any_o reconciliation_n betwixt_o lutheran_n and_o sacramentary_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o chapter_n §._o 1._o wherefore_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o next_o part_n of_o this_o chapter_n wherein_o 43._o he_o undertake_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o thing_n allege_v by_o i_o to_o take_v away_o the_o offence_n and_o scandal_n of_o the_o seem_a difference_n among_o protestant_n be_v but_o false_a and_o empty_a pretence_n the_o first_o thing_n that_o 52._o i_o allege_v be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvail_v at_o that_o the_o tigurin_n gesnerus_fw-la and_o other_o dislike_v the_o distemper_a passion_n of_o luther_n or_o that_o some_o difference_n be_v among_o they_o see_v the_o like_a be_v in_o former_a time_n between_o epiphanius_n and_o chrysostome_n hierome_n ruffinus_n augustine_n and_o other_o the_o second_o that_o the_o papist_n have_v their_o difference_n also_o and_o those_o far_o more_o material_a and_o unreconcilable_a than_o any_o be_v among_o us._n the_o three_o that_o our_o difference_n grow_v not_o out_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o quality_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o that_o we_o want_v not_o a_o certain_a rule_n by_o the_o direction_n whereof_o all_o controversy_n may_v be_v end_v against_o the_o first_o of_o these_o my_o allegation_n first_o he_o oppose_v a_o devilish_a untrueth_n affirm_v that_o gesnerus_fw-la and_o the_o tigurin_n do_v not_o only_o dislike_v the_o distemper_a passion_n of_o luther_n but_o hate_v he_o with_o mortal_a hatred_n and_o accurse_v and_o execrate_v he_o as_o possess_v of_o a_o legion_n of_o devil_n which_o neither_o higgon_n into_o who_o a_o lie_a spirit_n be_v enter_v nor_o any_o of_o those_o devil_n he_o be_v grow_v so_o familiar_a with_o shall_v ever_o prove_v so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n of_o tremble_a but_o at_o the_o fearful_a judgement_n of_o god_n against_o such_o as_o master_n higgon_n be_v that_o forsake_v the_o love_n of_o
16._o of_o the_o error_n that_o be_v and_o have_v be_v touch_v the_o use_n of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n in_o punish_v offender_n 24._o chap._n 17._o of_o the_o consideration_n move_v the_o church_n to_o use_v indulgence_n towards_o offender_n 25._o chap._n 18._o of_o their_o damnable_a pride_n who_o condemn_v all_o those_o church_n wherein_o want_v of_o due_a execution_n of_o discipline_n and_o imperfection_n of_o man_n be_v find_v 26._o the_o second_o book_n be_v of_o the_o note_n of_o the_o ch●…h_n chap._n 1._o of_o the_o nature_n of_o note_n of_o difference_n and_o their_o several_a kind_n 29._o chap._n 2._o of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o note_n whereby_o the_o true_a church_n be_v discern_v from_o other_o society_n of_o man_n in_o the_o world_n 30._o chap._n 3._o of_o bellarmine_n reason_n against_o the_o note_n of_o the_o church_n assign_v by_o us._n 32._o chap._n 4._o of_o stapletons_n reason_n against_o our_o note_n of_o the_o church_n 34._o chap._n 5._o of_o their_o note_n of_o the_o church_n and_o first_o of_o antiquity_n 37._o chap._n 6._o of_o succession_n 39_o chap._n 7._o of_o the_o three_o note_n assign_v by_o they_o which_o be_v unity_n 40._o chap._n 8._o of_o universality_n 41._o chap._n 9_o of_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o catholic_a 42._o the_o three_o book_n show_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n demonstrate_v by_o those_o note_n chap._n 1._o of_o the_o division_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n into_o the_o western_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o the_o oriental_a or_o east_n church_n 47._o chap._n 2._o of_o the_o harsh_a and_o unaduised_a censure_n of_o the_o romanist_n condemn_v all_o the_o oriental_a church_n as_o schismatic_a all_o and_o heretical_a 75._o chap._n 3._o of_o the_o nature_n of_o heresy_n of_o the_o diverse_a kind_n of_o thing_n wherein_o man_n err_v and_o what_o pertinacie_n it_o be_v that_o make_v a_o heretic_n 76._o chap._n 4._o of_o those_o thing_n which_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v express_o to_o know_v and_o believe_v and_o wherein_o no_o man_n can_v err_v without_o note_n of_o heresy_n 77._o chap._n 5._o of_o the_o nature_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o kind_n of_o it_o and_o that_o it_o no_o way_n appear_v that_o the_o church_n of_o greece_n etc._n etc._n be_v heretical_a or_o in_o damnable_a schism_n 80._o chap._n 6._o of_o the_o latin_a church_n that_o it_o continue_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n even_o till_o our_o time_n and_o that_o the_o error_n we_o condemn_v be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n 81._o chap._n 7._o of_o the_o several_a point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n wherein_o some_o in_o the_o church_n err_v but_o not_o the_o whole_a church_n 83._o chap._n 8._o of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o and_o where_o it_o be_v bef●…_n luther_n time_n 84._o chap._n 9_o of_o a_o apostasy_n of_o some_o in_o the_o church_n 86._o chap._n 10._o of_o their_o error_n who_o say_v nothing_o can_v be_v amiss_o in_o the_o church_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n or_o discipline_n 89._o chap._n 11._o of_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o manifold_a confusion_n and_o evil_n former_o find_v in_o the_o church_n ibid._n chap._n 12._o of_o the_o desire_n and_o expectation_n of_o a_o reformation_n of_o the_o corrupt_a state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o alteration_n which_o have_v be_v be_v a_o reformation_n 91._o chap._n 13._o of_o the_o first_o reason_n bring_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v the_o faith_n first_o deliver_v because_o the_o precise_a time_n wherein_o error_n begin_v in_o it_o can_v be_v note_v 93._o chap._n 14._o of_o diverse_a particular_a error_n which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n who_o first_o author_n can_v be_v name_v 94._o chap._n 15._o of_o the_o second_o reason_n bring_v to_o prove_v that_o they_o hold_v the_o ancient_a faith_n because_o our_o man_n dissent_v from_o they_o confess_v they_o dissent_v from_o the_o father_n where_o sundry_a instance_n be_v examine_v 96._o chap._n 16._o of_o limbus_n patrum_fw-la concupiscence_n and_o satisfaction_n touch_v which_o calvin_n be_v false_o charge_v to_o confess_v that_o he_o dissent_v from_o the_o father_n 99_o chap._n 17._o of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o merit_n 101._o chap._n 18._o of_o the_o father_n strictness_n in_o admit_v man_n into_o the_o ministry_n of_o single_a life_n and_o of_o their_o severity_n in_o the_o discipline_n of_o repentance_n 103._o chap._n 19_o of_o the_o lent_n fast_o of_o layman_n baptism_n and_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n 106._o chap._n 20._o of_o the_o invocation_n and_o adoration_n of_o saint_n touch_v which_o the_o century_n writer_n be_v wrongful_o charge_v to_o dissent_v from_o the_o father_n 109._o chap._n 21._o of_o martyrdom_n and_o the_o excessive_a praise_n thereof_o find_v in_o the_o father_n 114._o chap._n 22._o wherein_o be_v examine_v their_o proof_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n take_v from_o a_o false_a supposal_n that_o our_o doctrine_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o heresy_n long_o since_o condemn_v 115._o chap._n 23._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o florinus_n make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n false_o impute_v to_o caluine_n and_o other_o 117._o chap._n 24._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o origen_n touch_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o touch_v hell_n false_o impute_v to_o calvin_n 133._o chap._n 25._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o peputian_o make_v woman_n priest_n 134._o chap._n 26._o of_o the_o suppose_a heresy_n of_o proclus_n and_o the_o messalian_o touch_v concupiscence_n in_o the_o regenerate_a 135._o chap._n 27._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o novatus_fw-la sabellius_n and_o the_o manichee_n 139._o chap._n 28._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o donatist_n 141._o chap._n 29._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o arrius_n and_o aerius_n 142._o chap._n 30._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o jovinian_a 143._o chap._n 31._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o vigilantius_n 146._o chap._n 32._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o pelagius_n touch_v original_a sin_n and_o the_o difference_n of_o venial_a and_o mortal_a sin_n 147._o chap._n 33._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n false_o impute_v to_o beza_n and_o other_o 149._o chap._n 34._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o certain_a touch_v the_o sacrament_n and_o how_o our_o man_n deny_v that_o to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v carry_v about_o to_o be_v gaze_v on_o 150._o chap._n 35._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o eutiches_n false_o impute_v to_o the_o divine_n of_o germany_n 151._o chap._n 36._o of_o the_o suppose_a heresy_n of_o zenaias_n persa_n impugn_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n 152._o chap._n 37._o of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o lampetian_o touch_v vow_n 153._o chap._n 38._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o certain_a touch_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n communicate_v to_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n ibid._n chap._n 39_o of_o succession_n and_o the_o exception_n of_o the_o adversary_n against_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o suppose_a want_n of_o it_o 154._o chap._n 40._o of_o succession_n and_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o it_o 159._o chap._n 41._o of_o unity_n the_o kind_n of_o it_o and_o that_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v not_o always_o a_o note_n of_o true_a and_o catholic_a profession_n 160._o chap._n 42._o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v for_o they_o or_o against_o we_o from_o the_o note_n of_o unity_n or_o division_n opposite_a unto_o it_o 164._o chap._n 43._o of_o universality_n 169._o chap._n 44._o of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o the_o suppose_a absurdity_n of_o our_o profession_n 170._o chap._n 45._o of_o the_o paradox_n and_o gross_a absurdity_n of_o romish_a religion_n 172._o chap._n 46._o of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o church_n doctrine_n 174._o chap._n 47._o of_o the_o protestant_n pretend_v confession_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n ibid._n chap._n 48._o of_o miracle_n confirm_v the_o roman_a faith_n 175._o chap._n 49._o of_o prophetical_a prediction_n 177._o chap._n 50._o of_o the_o felicity_n of_o they_o that_o profess_v the_o truth_n 178._o chap._n 51._o of_o the_o miserable_a end_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n ibid._n chap._n 52._o of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o the_o life_n of_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n 179._o a_o appendix_n to_o the_o three_o book_n wherein_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v and_o continue_v a_o true_a orthodox_n and_o protestant_n church_n and_o that_o the_o maintainer_n of_o romish_a error_n be_v only_o a_o faction_n in_o the_o same_o at_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n appear_v a_o answer_n to_o m._n brerelyes_n objection_n concern_v the_o mass_n public_o use_v in_o all_o church_n at_o luther_n appear_v pag._n 185._o chap._n 1._o of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n 224._o
nature_n that_o by_o violence_n and_o the_o unjust_a course_n hold_v by_o wicked_a man_n we_o may_v be_v hinder_v from_o it_o without_o any_o fault_n of_o we_o if_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n be_v just_a yet_o it_o do_v not_o cut_v the_o excommunicate_a off_o from_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o do_v presuppose_v that_o they_o have_v already_o cut_v off_o themselves_o or_o that_o if_o this_o sentence_n be_v due_o and_o advise_o pronounce_v make_v th●…_n not_o relent_v but_o that_o still_o they_o hold_v out_o against_o it_o they_o will_v cut_v off_o themselves_o and_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o all_o inward_a grace_n and_o virtue_n from_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n it_o do_v not_o whole_o cut_v they_o off_o for_o they_o may_v and_o often_o do_v retain_v the_o entire_a profession_n of_o save_v truth_n together_o with_o the_o character_n of_o baptism_n which_o be_v the_o mark_n of_o christianity_n and_o so_o far_o forth_o notwithstanding_o their_o disobedience_n still_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o guide_n by_o who_o sentence_n they_o be_v excommunicate_a that_o they_o will_v rather_o endure_v and_o suffer_v any_o thing_n they_o schismatical_o join_v themselves_o to_o any_o other_o communion_n it_o do_v therefore_o only_o cut_v they_o off_o from_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o holy_a duty_n and_o deprive_v they_o of_o those_o comfort_n which_o by_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrament_n etc._n etc._n they_o may_v have_v enjoy_v this_o excommunication_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o great_a and_o the_o lesser_a the_o great_a put_v the_o excommunicate_a from_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n &_o blood_n &_o deprive_v they_o of_o all_o that_o comfort_n and_o strength_n of_o grace_n which_o from_o it_o they_o may_v receive_v it_o deny_v to_o they_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n public_a prayer_n &_o so_o leave_v they_o to_o themselves_o as_o forelorn_a &_o miserable_a wretch_n without_o that_o assistance_n presence_n &_o protection_n which_o from_o god_n she_o obtain_v for_o her_o obedient_a child_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v deliver_v unto_o satan_n because_o they_o be_v leave_v naked_a &_o void_a of_o all_o mean_n to_o make_v resistance_n unto_o his_o will_n &_o pleasure_n &_o as_o if_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o they_o be_v deny_v that_o solace_n which_o they_o may_v find_v in_o the_o company_n and_o conversation_n of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o now_o do_v no_o less_o fly_v from_o they_o than_o in_o old_a time_n they_o do_v from_o the_o leper_n who_o cry_v i_o be_o unclean_a i_o be_o unclean_a the_o lesser_a excommunication_n exclude_v only_o from_o the_o sacramental_a pledge_n and_o assurance_n of_o god_n love_n which_o when_o it_o be_v pronounce_v against_o they_o that_o stubborne_o stand_v out_o and_o will_v not_o yield_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n direction_n &_o disposition_n be_v proper_o name_v excommunication_n but_o when_o it_o be_v pronounce_v against_o they_o that_o yield_v when_o they_o have_v offend_v and_o seek_v the_o bless_a remedy_n of_o the_o evil_n they_o have_v commit_v it_o be_v not_o so_o proper_o name_v excommunication_n but_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o discipline_n of_o repentance_n and_o of_o that_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o christ_n leave_v unto_o his_o church_n whereby_o she_o impose_v and_o prescribe_v to_o her_o obedient_a child_n when_o they_o have_v offend_v such_o course_n of_o penitency_n whereby_o they_o may_v obtain_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o recover_v the_o former_a estate_n from_o which_o they_o be_v fall_v chap._n 16._o of_o the_o error_n that_o be_v and_o have_v be_v touch_v the_o use_n of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n in_o punish_v offender_n touch_v this_o discipline_n of_o repentance_n and_o power_n of_o the_o church_n in_o order_v offender_n and_o the_o use_n thereof_o there_o be_v and_o have_v be_v sundry_a both_o error_n and_o heresy_n the_o first_o of_o the_o pelagian_n in_o former_a time_n &_o the_o anabaptist_n in_o our_o time_n who_o for_o every_o the_o least_o imperfection_n cast_v man_n out_o of_o their_o society_n deny_v that_o any_o be_v or_o can_v be_v in_o or_o of_o the_o church_n in_o who_o the_o least_o imperfection_n be_v find_v which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a there_o shall_v be_v no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n all_o man_n be_v subject_n to_o sin_n and_o sinful_a imperfection_n that_o either_o be_v or_o have_v be_v for_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a dispute_n of_o the_o pelagian_n whether_o a_o man_n may_v be_v without_o sin_n or_o not_o whereof_o see_v that_o which_o coelestinum_n augustine_n and_o pelagianos_fw-la hierom_n have_v write_v against_o the_o madness_n and_o folly_n of_o those_o man_n justit_fw-la for_o confirmation_n of_o their_o error_n touch_v absolute_a perfection_n they_o allege_v that_o of_o the_o 7._o canticle_n thou_o be_v all_o fair_a my_o love_n and_o there_o be_v no_o spot_n in_o thou_o and_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o 27._o ephesian_n that_o christ_n give_v himself_o for_o his_o church_n that_o he_o may_v make_v it_o to_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n not_o have_v spot_n or_o wrinkle_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n for_o answer_v whereunto_o first_o we_o must_v remember_v that_o which_o former_o be_v observe_v to_o wit_n that_o sundry_a glorious_a title_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n which_o agree_v not_o to_o the_o whole_a total_o consider_v but_o to_o some_o part_n only_o so_o it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v fair_a glorious_a and_o without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n not_o for_o that_o all_o or_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o but_o because_o the_o best_a and_o principal_a part_n be_v so_o and_o for_o that_o the_o end_n intent_n and_o purpose_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o grace_n give_v to_o the_o church_n be_v to_o make_v all_o to_o be_v so_o if_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o themselves_o second_o we_o must_v observe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o double_a perfection_n purity_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o church_n without_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n to_o wit_n absolute_a and_o according_a to_o the_o state_n of_o this_o life_n the_o first_o be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n while_o they_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o body_n of_o death_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o that_o absolute_a purity_n and_o perfection_n the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v pure_a all_o fair_a and_o to_o have_v no_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n 63._o not_o for_o that_o actual_o and_o present_o it_o be_v so_o but_o for_o that_o it_o be_v prepare_v to_o be_v so_o hereafter_o as_o augustine_n fit_o ●…teth_v the_o second_o kind_n of_o purity_n which_o be_v not_o absolute_a but_o according_a to_o the_o state_n of_o this_o life_n consist_v herein_o that_o all_o sin_n be_v avoid_v or_o repent_v of_o and_o in_o christ_n forgive_v and_o his_o righteousness_n impute_v in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n be_v now_o present_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a and_o yet_o not_o free_a from_o all_o sinful_a imperfection_n as_o the_o pelagian_n and_o anabaptist_n vain_o and_o fond_o imagine_v contrary_a to_o all_o experience_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o and_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o us._n the_o second_o error_n touch_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o order_n of_o sinner_n and_o the_o use_n thereof_o be_v that_o of_o the_o 25._o novatian_o who_o refuse_v to_o reconcile_v and_o restore_v to_o the_o church_n peace_n such_o as_o grievous_o offend_v but_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n without_o all_o that_o comfort_n which_o the_o sacrament_n of_o grace_n may_v yield_v unto_o they_o and_o if_o any_o fall_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n and_o deny_v the_o faith_n how_o great_a and_o unfeigned_a soever_o their_o repentance_n seem_v to_o be_v they_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o have_v any_o place_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o three_o of_o certain_a of_o who_o epist_n cyprian_n speak_v that_o will_v not_o reconcile_v nor_o restore_v to_o the_o church_n peace_n such_o as_o foradultery_n be_v cast_v out_o the_o four_o of_o the_o 1._o donatist_n who_o will_v not_o receive_v into_o the_o lap_n &_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o have_v in_o time_n of_o persecution_n to_o save_v their_o own_o life_n deliver_v the_o book_n and_o other_o holy_a thing_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o persecutor_n do_v afterward_o repent_v of_o that_o they_o have_v do_v and_o with_o tear_n of_o repentant_a grief_n seek_v to_o recover_v their_o former_a stand_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n again_o yea_o they_o proceed_v so_o far_o in_o this_o their_o violent_a and_o
himself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o he_o may_v not_o have_v be_v suffer_v to_o do_v if_o he_o have_v err_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o incarnation_n these_o nestorian_n inhabit_v though_o mix_v with_o mahumetanes_n and_o infidel_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o orient_a for_o beside_o the_o country_n of_o babylon_n assyria_n mesopotamia_n parthia_n and_o media_n where_o very_a many_o of_o they_o be_v find_v they_o be_v scatter_v in_o the_o east_n northerly_a to_o cataia_n and_o southerly_a to_o india_n so_o that_o in_o the_o history_n we_o find_v mention_n of_o they_o and_o no_o other_o sort_n of_o christian_n in_o sundry_a region_n of_o tartary_n these_o have_v a_o patriarch_n reside_v in_o muzall_n on_o the_o river_n tigris_n in_o mesopotamia_n this_o muzall_n either_o be_v the_o city_n of_o seleucia_n so_o honour_v in_o time_n past_a that_o the_o government_n of_o those_o part_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o with_o the_o name_n of_o a_o catholic_a and_o place_n of_o session_n in_o counsel_n next_o the_o patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n or_o if_o that_o be_v destroy_v the_o patriarchall_a seat_n be_v thence_o translate_v to_o muzal_n in_o this_o city_n though_o subject_a to_o mahometan_n the_o jacobite_n have_v three_o temple_n the_o nestorian_n fifteen_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v about_o forty_o thousand_o soul_n 4._o in_o the_o time_n of_o julius_n the_o three_o certain_a of_o these_o nestorian_n fall_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o muzal_n and_o take_v for_o their_o head_n simon_n sulaca_n of_o the_o order_n of_o saint_n basil._n who_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n exhibit_v a_o orthodox_n confession_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o be_v by_o he_o confirm_v bishop_n of_o muzal_n in_o title_n &_o name_n but_o the_o other_o hold_v the_o place_n still_o so_o that_o when_o he_o return_v he_o be_v force_v to_o abide_v in_o caramit_n this_o simon_n sulaca_n make_v certain_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n and_o cause_v the_o memory_n of_o nestorius_n to_o be_v put_v out_o of_o their_o liturgy_n and_o in_o the_o end_n he_o be_v slay_v by_o the_o turk_n minister_n but_o abdesu_n of_o the_o same_o order_n succeed_v he_o and_o after_o he_o aatalla_n after_o he_o the_o archbishop_n of_o gelu_fw-la and_o salamas_n renounce_v the_o obedience_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o muzal_n be_v elect_v patriarch_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o that_o there_o be_v four_o patriarch_n successive_o follow_v one_o another_o that_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o no_o one_o of_o they_o ever_o possess_v that_o city_n but_o reside_v either_o in_o caramit_n serit_fw-la or_o zeinalbach_n in_o the_o confine_n of_o persia._n all_o these_o be_v undoubted_o orthodox_n touch_v the_o article_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o ibidem_fw-la elias_n one_o among_o the_o bishop_n that_o hold_v the_o seat_n at_o muzal_n desire_v to_o be_v join_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o send_v his_o confession_n which_o be_v find_v to_o be_v orthodox_n and_o right_n so_o that_o they_o of_o that_o faction_n also_o seem_v not_o to_o have_v differ_v much_o in_o judgement_n touch_v any_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o nestorian_n be_v subject_a to_o these_o two_o patriarch_n to_o this_o day_n the_o patriarch_n of_o muzal_n have_v under_o he_o 22_o bishop_n more_o than_o 600_o territory_n in_o which_o there_o be_v at_o the_o least_o 22_o rich_a and_o flourish_a city_n and_o in_o every_o of_o they_o 500_o family_n in_o muzal_n 1000_o whereof_o every_o one_o contain_v about_o forty_o person_n and_o other-less_a territory_n contain_v about_o 200_o or_o 300_o family_n a_o piece_n and_o thirty_o monastery_n in_o india_n also_o there_o be_v many_o family_n subject_a to_o this_o patriarch_n by_o the_o name_n of_o patriarch_n of_o babylon_n to_o who_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o assign_v bishop_n there_o be_v in_o india_n before_o the_o portugal_n come_v about_o some_o 15_o or_o 16_o thousand_o family_n about_o some_o thirty_o year_n since_o their_o archbishop_n fall_v from_o the_o patriarch_n of_o muzal_n or_o babylon_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o portugal_n yet_o retain_v the_o ancient_a religion_n which_o be_v permit_v but_o his_o successor_n in_o another_o synod_n hold_v at_o diamper_n not_o far_o from_o maliapur_n by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o goa_n in_o the_o year_n 1599_o receive_v the_o religion_n of_o rome_n also_o and_o suffer_v their_o liturgy_n so_o to_o be_v alter_v as_o we_o find_v it_o in_o bibliotheca_fw-la patrum_fw-la fine_a but_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o take_v a_o view_n of_o the_o particular_a point_n of_o their_o religion_n first_o all_o clergy_n man_n among_o the_o chaldean_n and_o also_o all_o lay_v man_n that_o excel_v in_o devotion_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n under_o both_o kind_n the_o rest_n receive_v into_o their_o mouth_n the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n dip_v into_o the_o blood_n they_o contract_v marriage_n within_o the_o degree_n prohibit_v marry_v in_o the_o second_o degree_n without_o dispensation_n their_o priest_n be_v marry_v and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o first_o wife_n have_v liberty_n to_o marry_v the_o second_o or_o three_o time_n or_o often_o they_o minister_v the_o communion_n in_o leaven_a bread_n they_o use_v not_o auricular_a confession_n nor_o confirmation_n they_o deny_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o specialty_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o indian_n or_o christian_n of_o s._n thomas_n before_o they_o admit_v any_o alteration_n be_v these_o first_o they_o distribute_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n second_o they_o use_v bread_n season_v with_o salt_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o wine_n india_n afford_v none_o the_o juice_n of_o raisin_n soften_v one_o night_n in_o water_n and_o so_o press_v forth_o three_o they_o baptize_v not_o their_o child_n till_o they_o be_v forty_o day_n old_a except_o in_o danger_n of_o death_n four_o their_o priest_n be_v marry_v but_o exclude_v from_o the_o second_o marriage_n five_o they_o have_v no_o image_n in_o their_o church_n but_o the_o cross_n only_o six_o they_o deny_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o assyrian_n and_o indian_n unjust_o name_v nestorian_n let_v we_o pass_v to_o those_o christian_n that_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v monophysit_n as_o the_o jacobite_n armenian_n cophti_n or_o christian_n of_o egypt_n the_o aethiopian_n or_o abissens_n these_o believe_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o man_n be_v so_o unite_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v true_o god_n and_o true_o man_n and_o that_o after_o the_o union_n they_o remain_v distinct_a in_o their_o be_v of_o essence_n and_o property_n so_o that_o the_o divinity_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o essence_n substance_n and_o nature_n with_o the_o humanity_n for_o the_o divinity_n be_v infinite_a incomprehensible_a and_o increated_a and_o the_o humanity_n be_v finite_a and_o a_o create_a essence_n yet_o because_o they_o be_v unite_v and_o conjoin_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o person_n they_o say_v they_o be_v but_o one_o nature_n and_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v as_o we_o do_v that_o there_o be_v two_o nature_n in_o christ._n that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o know_v what_o we_o be_v to_o think_v of_o these_o christian_n differ_v thus_o from_o we_o i_o will_v first_o historical_o show_v how_o this_o difference_n grow_v second_o more_o large_o refute_v their_o opinion_n and_o three_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o difference_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reject_v as_o heretic_n there_o live_v at_o constantinople_n a_o certain_a man_n who_o name_n be_v eutiches_n a_o priest_n and_o a_o abbot_n this_o eutiches_n in_o opposition_n to_o nestorius_n who_o divide_v the_o person_n of_o christ_n proceed_v so_o far_o that_o he_o confound_v the_o nature_n imagine_v a_o conversion_n of_o the_o divinity_n into_o the_o humanity_n or_o of_o the_o humanity_n into_o the_o divinity_n or_o a_o kind_n of_o mixtion_n of_o they_o this_o eutiches_n be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o eusebius_n bish._n of_o dorilaeum_n who_o understand_v by_o conference_n with_o he_o that_o he_o be_v fall_v into_o such_o a_o damnable_a haerisie_n make_v the_o matter_n know_v to_o flavianus_n the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n wish_v he_o to_o call_v eutiches_n unto_o he_o and_o sharp_o to_o rebuke_v he_o lest_o the_o faith_n may_v be_v endanger_v flavianus_n assoon_o as_o he_o understand_v thus_o much_o call_v together_o 30_o of_o his_o bishop_n and_o in_o their_o presence_n ask_v of_o eutiches_n whether_o he_o do_v believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o we_o he_o answer_v he_o have_v never_o say_v so_o hitherto_o but_o will_v see_v they_o will_v have_v it_o
and_o even_o to_o this_o day_n they_o account_v their_o chief_a bishop_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n call_v he_o always_o ignatius_n and_o to_o he_o the_o metropolitan_a of_o jerusalem_n who_o the_o jacobite_n call_v the_o five_o patriarch_n be_v subject_a as_o ancient_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v before_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o take_v from_o antioch_n the_o 3_o province_n of_o palestina_n and_o assign_v they_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o his_o patriarchicall_a jurisdiction_n beside_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o his_o superior_a he_o have_v under_o he_o 7_o archbishop_n with_o many_o bishop_n let_v we_o therefore_o take_v a_o view_n of_o their_o religion_n touch_v the_o 2_o nature_n in_o christ_n they_o believe_v as_o i_o have_v already_o deliver_v the_o other_o particular_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v these_o first_o they_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o god_n only_o and_o not_o to_o the_o priest_n or_o but_o very_o seldom_o so_o that_o many_o communicate_v without_o confession_n second_o they_o admit_v not_o purgatory_n nor_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a three_o their_o priest_n be_v marry_v four_o they_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n in_o unleavened_a bread_n five_o they_o minister_v the_o eucharist_n in_o both_o kind_n six_o they_o use_v circumcision_n even_o of_o both_o sex_n seven_o they_o sign_n their_o child_n before_o baptism_n with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n imprint_v with_o a_o burn_a iron_n some_o in_o the_o arm_n some_o in_o the_o forehead_n that_o they_o may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v christian_n and_o that_o if_o ever_o they_o fall_v away_o they_o may_v by_o this_o mark_n be_v know_v to_o be_v apostate_n hence_o grow_v the_o false_a report_n that_o they_o baptize_v with_o fire_n eight_o they_o add_v to_o the_o trisagium_fw-la this_o appendix_n qui_fw-la crucifixus_fw-la est_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la and_o hereupon_o be_v charge_v to_o attribute_v the_o passion_n of_o death_n to_o the_o divinity_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o whole_a trinity_n which_o be_v make_v more_o probable_a because_o they_o acknowledge_v but_o one_o nature_n in_o christ._n touch_v this_o hymn_n it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n there_o be_v a_o most_o fearful_a earthquake_n which_o special_o appear_v in_o constantinople_n where_o the_o wall_n with_o 57_o tower_n fall_v down_o so_o that_o the_o people_n be_v force_v to_o go_v out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o to_o abide_v in_o the_o field_n to_o avoid_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o ruin_n while_o they_o be_v cry_v curie_n eleeson_fw-mi a_o child_n be_v sudden_o take_v up_o into_o the_o air_n and_o upon_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o godly_a let_v down_o again_o to_o the_o ground_n without_o any_o hurt_n who_o when_o he_o be_v come_v down_o tell_v they_o he_o have_v hear_v a_o choir_n of_o angel_n sing_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d will_v they_o so_o to_o sing_v that_o the_o earthquake_n may_v 〈◊〉_d when_o proclus_n the_o bishop_n hear_v this_o he_o command_v the_o whole_a congregation_n so_o to_o sing_v and_o the_o earthquake_n cease_v and_o immediate_o the_o child_n die_v h●…upon_o theodosius_n the_o emperor_n command_v this_o hymn_n to_o be_v sing_v in_o all_o christian_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n so_o that_o it_o grow_v to_o be_v in_o great_a request_n 14●…6_n petrus_n gnapheus_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n add_v to_o this_o hymn_n qui_fw-la crucifixus_fw-la est_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la and_o be_v bitter_o reprove_v by_o many_o bishop_n for_o so_o do_v 〈◊〉_d ephraim_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n find_v that_o certain_a be_v divide_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o other_o christian_n in_o respect_n of_o this_o addition_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o of_o the_o east_n understand_v this_o hymn_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o sin_v not_o in_o add_v qui_fw-la crucifixus_fw-la est_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la but_o they_o that_o inhabit_v constantinople_n &_o the_o nestorian_a part_n understand_v it_o of_o the_o trinity_n &_o therefore_o endure_v not_o this_o addition_n because_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o attribute_v the_o passion_n of_o death_n to_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o vicar_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o jacobite_n be_v confer_v with_o by_o some_o western_a christian_n about_o this_o addition_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o understand_v this_o hymn_n of_o christ_n &_o so_o apply_v the_o passion_n of_o death_n on_o the_o cross_n to_o christ_n only_o &_o not_o to_o the_o holy_a trinity_n 9_o they_o deny_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n next_o to_o these_o in_o order_n be_v the_o armenian_n these_o inhabit_v asia_n in_o that_o part_n which_o lie_v between_o the_o mountain_n taurus_n &_o ca●…casus_n their_o country_n armenia_n reach_v from_o cappadocia_n to_o the_o caspian_a sea_n they_o be_v subject_a to_o 2_o patriarch_n for_o the_o great_a armenia_n be_v subject_a to_o one_o &_o the_o lesser_a to_o another_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o great_a armenia_n reside_v in_o the_o monastery_n &_o church_n of_o e●…meazin_n near_o the_o city_n eruan_fw-mi in_o persia._n the_o family_n that_o be_v subject_a to_o this_o patriarch_n be_v more_o than_o 150000_o beside_o exceed_v many_o monastery_n bishop_n priest_n religious_a man_n &_o deacon_n there_o be_v also_o certain_a primat_n or_o rather_o patriarch_n of_o this_o armenian_a nation_n in_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o persia_n &_o in_o constantinople_n who_o though_o of_o right_n they_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o this_o patriarch_n yet_o sometime_o acknowledge_v no_o such_o thing_n the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o lesser_a armenia_n reside_v in_o the_o city_n sis_n in_o cilicia_n name_v at_o this_o day_n caramania_n this_o patriarch_n have_v under_o he_o 24_o prelate_n archbishop_n and_o bishop_n beside_o three_o hundred_o priest_n and_o exceed_v many_o deacon_n and_o clerk_n live_v of_o alm_n and_o their_o own_o labour_n and_o about_o twenty_o thousand_o family_n of_o christian_n which_o live_v in_o city_n village_n and_o castle_n of_o syria_n and_o cilicia_n and_o twenty_o monastery_n in_o every_o of_o which_o there_o be_v a_o hundred_o religious_a person_n these_o armeniaes_n both_o the_o great_a &_o the_o lesser_a be_v late_o take_v by_o the_o persian_n from_o the_o turk_n and_o add_v to_o the_o persian_a empire_n touch_v their_o religion_n nicephorus_n attribute_v unto_o they_o sundry_a damnable_a haerisy_n concern_v the_o trinity_n and_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n but_o most_o untrue_o according_a to_o genebrards_n observation_n before_o mention_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o their_o own_o confession_n extant_a send_v by_o the_o mandate_n of_o the_o catholic_a of_o armenia_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n not_o 50_o year_n ago_o by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o be_v orthodox_n in_o these_o point_n the_o specialty_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v these_o first_o touch_v the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o the_o jacobite_n former_o express_v second_o they_o admit_v only_o three_o general_a counsel_n they_o reject_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n they_o condemn_v leo_n bishop_n of_o rome_n they_o accurse_v eutiches_n and_o honour_n dioscorus_n three_o theyadde_n to_o the_o trisagium_fw-la as_o the_o jacobite_n also_o do_v qui_fw-la crufixus_fw-la est_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la but_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o they_o do_v and_o without_o any_o haereticall_a meaning_n four_o they_o affirm_v with_o the_o grecian_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n only_o five_o they_o think_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a shall_v not_o enjoy_v heaven_n happiness_n till_o after_o the_o resurrection_n six_o they_o deny_v purgatory_n and_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o dead_a seaventh_o they_o deny_v marriage_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n eight_o they_o deny_v the_o local_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n nine_o they_o deny_v that_o the_o sacrament_n give_v grace_n ten_o they_o think_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o all_o that_o be_v baptize_v together_o with_o their_o baptism_n eleaventh_o they_o mingle_v not_o water_n with_o wine_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n twelve_o they_o condemn_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n thirteen_o they_o admit_v marry_v priest_n and_o as_o some_o say_v admit_v none_o to_o be_v saecular_a priest_n except_o they_o be_v marry_v and_o yet_o exclude_v the_o second_o marriage_n fourteen_o they_o fast_o wednesday_n and_o friday_n and_o on_o those_o day_n eat_v neither_o oil_n nor_o fish_n neither_o do_v they_o drink_v wine_n and_o they_o abstain_v in_o like_a sort_n the_o whole_a lend_v save_v that_o on_o saturday_n and_o sunday_n they_o eat_v butter_n cheese_n &_o egg_n fifteenth_o in_o the_o lend_v they_o never_o consecrate_v but_o on_o saturday_n and_o sunday_n what_o day_n they_o fast_v not_o 16_o out_o of_o lent_n they_o eat_v flesh_n on_o all_o saturdays_n throughout_o
day_n for_o behold_v there_o be_v many_o that_o pervert_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o deny_v the_o say_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n reject_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o civil_a constitution_n of_o the_o emperor_n which_o molest_v persecute_v bring_v into_o bondage_n and_o without_o mercy_n torment_n and_o afflict_v even_o unto_o death_n they_o that_o defend_v the_o truth_n and_o that_o i_o may_v conclude_v many_o thing_n in_o few_o word_n with_o harl●…ttes_n forehead_n and_o execrable_a boldness_n do_v endeavour_n to_o subvert_v imperial_a and_o regal_a power_n and_o to_o overthrow_v all_o law_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n neither_o be_v these_o young_a man_n or_o unlearned_a but_o they_o be_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n high_a priest_n scribes_z pharisee_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n as_o they_o be_v that_o crucify_a christ_n so_o that_o we_o may_v right_o say_v of_o our_o time_n that_o which_o daniel_n long_o since_o pronounce_v in_o his_o 13_o chapter_n iniquity_n be_v go_v out_o from_o babylon_n from_o the_o elder_n and_o judge_n which_o seem_v to_o govern_v and_o rule_v the_o people_n for_o many_o that_o shall_v be_v pillar_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o defend_v the_o truth_n even_o unto_o blood_n do_v cast_v themselves_o headlong_o into_o the_o pit_n of_o heresy_n thus_o speak_v he_o in_o his_o time_n of_o the_o corrupt_a 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n wherein_o so_o damnable_a a_o faction_n prevail_v dangerous_o peru●…ting_v all_o thing_n that_o in_o the_o end_n he_o submit_v all_o his_o write_n to_o the_o judgement_n &_o correction_n of_o the_o true_a and_o catholic_a church_n but_o not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o malignant_a miscreant_n heretic_n schismatickes_n and_o their_o favourer_n chap._n 9_o of_o a_o apostasy_n of_o some_o in_o the_o church_n thus_o than_o we_o think_v with_o câ_fw-la lira_n that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o apostasy_n or_o revolt_n of_o many_o kingdom_n from_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o of_o many_o church_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o there_o have_v be_v a_o apostasy_n from_o the_o catholic_n faith_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n not_o for_o that_o all_o at_o any_o time_n do_v forsake_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o for_o that_o many_o fall_v from_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n a_o when_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n draw_v on_o iniquity_n shall_v abound_v and_o the_o charity_n of_o many_o shall_v wax_v cold_a and_o that_o 1_o timoth._n 4_o in_o the_o last_o time_n some_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n attend_v to_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o 2_o timoth._n 3_o in_o the_o last_o day_n there_o shall_v be_v perilous_a time_n man_n shall_v be_v lover_n of_o themselves_o man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n reprob●…e_o concern_v the_o faith_n this_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o apostasy_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o church_n itself_o answerable_o to_o that_o of_o ●_o nazianzen_n who_o say_v that_o as_o when_o one_o take_v water_n into_o his_o hand_n not_o only_o that_o which_o he_o take_v not_o up_o but_o that_o also_o which_o run_v forth_o and_o find_v passage_n between_o his_o finger_n be_v divide_v athanasii_fw-la and_o separate_v from_o that_o which_o he_o hold_v enclose_v in_o his_o hand_n so_o not_o only_o the_o open_a and_o profess_v enemy_n of_o the_o catholic_a verity_n but_o they_o also_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v her_o best_a and_o great_a friend_n be_v sometime_o divide_v one_o from_o another_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n then_o why_o it_o shall_v seem_v so_o strange_a to_o our_o adversary_n that_o our_o divine_n affirm_v there_o have_v be_v a_o apostasy_n from_o the_o faith_n not_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o of_o many_o in_o the_o church_n dangerous_o err_v and_o adulterate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n and_o that_o some_o say_v this_o apostasy_n begin_v soon_o some_o late_a for_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o those_o gross_a illusion_n wherewith_o man_n be_v abuse_v in_o these_o latter_a age_n sure_o that_o degree_n of_o apostasy_n do_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n in_o former_a time_n for_o there_o be_v no_o thought_n in_o any_o christian_a man_n live_v six_o hundred_o year_n ago_o they_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v the_o merit_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o give_v pardon_n 1088._o that_o he_o may_v depose_v prince_n for_o suppose_a heresy_n editi_fw-la that_o the_o sacrament_n not_o receive_v but_o elevate_v gaze_v on_o and_o adore_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n propitiatory_a for_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a 2._o that_o mary_n be_v conceive_v without_o original_a sin_n that_o the_o people_n be_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o only_o in_o one_o kind_n and_o sundry_a other_o thing_n of_o like_a nature_n but_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o declination_n from_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n it_o be_v certain_a it_o begin_v long_o ago_o even_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o error_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a be_v in_o some_o part_n of_o hell_n till_o the_o last_o day_n as_o domini_fw-la tertullian_n finem_fw-la irenaeus_n and_o sundry_a other_o of_o the_o ancient_a do_v imagine_v 345_o &_o that_o they_o see_v not_o god_n nor_o enjoy_v not_o heaven_n happiness_n till_o the_o general_a resurrection_n which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o many_o of_o the_o father_n that_o all_o catholic_a christian_n how_o wicked_o soever_o they_o live_v yet_o hold_v the_o foundation_n of_o true_a christian_a profession_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n after_o great_a torment_n endure_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v be_v save_v as_o it_o be_v by_o fire_n this_o be_v the_o error_n of_o sundry_a of_o the_o ancient_a who_o dare_v not_o say_v as_o origen_n that_o the_o angel_n that_o fall_v shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v restore_v nor_o as_o some_o other_o mollify_a the_o hardness_n of_o origens_n opinion_n that_o all_o man_n whether_o christian_n or_o infidel_n nor_o as_o a_o three_o sort_n that_o all_o christian_n how_o damnable_o soever_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v save_v scribit_fw-la but_o think_v it_o most_o reasonable_a that_o all_o right_n believe_v christian_n shall_v find_v mercy_n whatsoever_o their_o wickedness_n be_v this_o opinion_n be_v so_o general_a in_o videri_fw-la augustine_n time_n that_o very_o fearful_o he_o oppose_v himself_o against_o it_o and_o not_o dare_v whole_o to_o impugn_v that_o which_o he_o find_v to_o have_v so_o great_a and_o reverend_a author_n he_o qualify_v it_o what_o he_o can_v and_o so_o doubt_o broach_v that_o opinion_n which_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o papist_n of_o their_o heresy_n touch_v purgatory_n for_o say_v he_o if_o they_o will_v only_o have_v we_o think_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n live_v wicked_o here_o in_o this_o world_n may_v through_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_a find_v some_o mitigation_n of_o their_o pain_n in_o hell_n or_o have_v their_o punishment_n suspend_v and_o differ_v for_o a_o time_n yet_o so_o that_o they_o be_v confess_v to_o be_v eternal_a i_o will_v not_o strive_v with_o they_o yea_o say_v he_o it_o may_v be_v that_o man_n for_o some_o light_a sin_n and_o imperfection_n cleave_v to_o they_o while_o they_o be_v here_o may_v find_v pardon_n &_o remission_n in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v and_o be_v save_v as_o by_o fire_n which_o whether_o it_o be_v so_o or_o whether_o there_o be_v no_o other_o purge_v but_o in_o this_o life_n by_o the_o fire_n of_o tribulation_n he_o profess_v he_o know_v not_o nor_o dare_v not_o pronounce_v amplectebantur_fw-la of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o opinion_n of_o a_o double_a resurrection_n the_o first_o of_o the_o good_a who_o shall_v live_v in_o all_o happiness_n on_o the_o earth_n a_o thousand_o year_n before_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v awake_v out_o of_o the_o sleep_n of_o death_n and_o another_o after_o the_o thousand_o year_n expire_v when_o the_o wicked_a also_o shall_v rise_v and_o go_v into_o everlasting_a fire_n and_o the_o good_a into_o everlasting_a life_n which_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v the_o second_o resurrection_n how_o general_o this_o error_n spread_v itself_o in_o the_o true_a church_n they_o that_o have_v but_o look_v into_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n and_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n can_v be_v ignorant_a necessari●…_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o infant_n receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o well_o as_o baptism_n do_v possess_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o in_o the_o church_n for_o certain_a hundred_o of_o year_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o augustine_n write_v of_o it_o in_o his_o time_n and_o etc._n hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la so_o
of_o religion_n be_v change_v such_o be_v the_o change_n from_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n or_o from_o christianity_n to_o paganism_n the_o second_o when_o the_o essence_n remain_v the_o same_o the_o state_n be_v change_v such_o be_v the_o change_n of_o judaism_n into_o christianity_n there_o be_v in_o the_o late_a new_a sacrament_n ceremony_n and_o a_o new_a ministry_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o former_a and_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v but_o in_o expectation_n only_o before_o the_o three_o be_v when_o not_o the_o whole_a essence_n and_o state_n of_o religion_n but_o some_o part_n of_o it_o only_o be_v so_o change_v that_o some_o impugn_v and_o deny_v those_o thing_n which_o other_o always_o do_v and_o do_v hold_v most_o certain_a the_o opposition_n be_v so_o great_a that_o there_o grow_v a_o apparent_a separation_n between_o they_o the_o one_o sort_n refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o other_o as_o when_o the_o arrian_n deny_v the_o son_n of_o god_n to_o be_v coessential_a coequal_a and_o coeternal_a with_o his_o father_n the_o four_o when_o man_n so_o bring_v in_o new_a opinion_n and_o observation_n into_o the_o church_n that_o yet_o both_o they_o and_o other_o not_o lead_v away_o in_o the_o same_o error_n hold_v communion_n still_o in_o the_o three_o first_o kind_n of_o mutation_n all_o those_o circumstance_n they_o speak_v of_o may_v be_v note_v but_o not_o always_o in_o the_o four_o now_o the_o mutation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v of_o the_o four_o and_o last_o sort_n for_o the_o error_n thereof_o be_v so_o bring_v in_o that_o both_o they_o that_o be_v the_o author_n of_o they_o and_o other_o that_o never_o fall_v into_o they_o be_v both_o of_o one_o communion_n as_o i_o will_v make_v it_o most_o clear_a and_o evident_a in_o that_o which_o follow_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o require_v we_o to_o show_v these_o circumstance_n they_o speak_v of_o second_o for_o the_o better_a clear_n of_o this_o matter_n we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o aberration_n which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o her_o ancient_a purity_n and_o simplicity_n consist_v in_o four_o thing_n first_o in_o certain_a canon_n law_n and_o tradition_n evil_a and_o hurtful_a from_o the_o beginning_n second_o in_o the_o multitude_n of_o law_n and_o canon_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o number_n grow_v to_o be_v a_o burden_n three_o in_o that_o the_o state_n of_o thing_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n alter_v the_o same_o constitution_n and_o ordinance_n become_v hurtful_a that_o be_v former_o good_a or_o in_o that_o thing_n institute_v to_o one_o end_n be_v in_o process_n of_o time_n apply_v to_o another_o or_o evil_a and_o dangerous_a opinion_n corrupt_v the_o use_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o whole_o to_o be_v mislike_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v new_o add_v four_o in_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n touch_v that_o aberration_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o law_n canon_n and_o constitution_n hurtful_a from_o the_o beginning_n we_o can_v note_v the_o beginning_n of_o it_o and_o assign_v who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o such_o law_n but_o when_o the_o law_n themselves_o be_v not_o evil_a but_o the_o number_n of_o law_n canon_n and_o constitution_n be_v a_o burden_n to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o evil_n complain_v of_o it_o be_v most_o foolish_a to_o urge_v we_o to_o show_v the_o first_o author_n thereof_o as_o likewise_o when_o law_n not_o evil_a in_o the_o beginning_n by_o alteration_n of_o time_n grow_v hurtful_a or_o when_o thing_n from_o one_o use_v grow_v to_o another_o 20._o hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la note_v that_o the_o custom_n be_v to_o communicate_v little_a child_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n which_o be_v in_o time_n cease_v yet_o still_o they_o continue_v in_o his_o time_n to_o give_v wine_n though_o not_o consecrate_v to_o child_n new_o baptize_v which_o he_o confess_v to_o be_v a_o superstitious_a and_o foolish_a custom_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o show_v the_o beginning_n of_o it_o the_o aberration_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n be_v in_o such_o thing_n and_o so_o carry_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o the_o author_n of_o those_o new_a and_o false_a opinion_n be_v not_o disclaim_v and_o note_v as_o damnable_a heretic_n as_o be_v those_o that_o err_v in_o thing_n most_o clear_o resolve_v before_o or_o that_o err_v with_o such_o pertinacy_n that_o they_o divide_v themselves_o from_o all_o that_o think_v otherwise_o but_o the_o author_n of_o these_o error_n and_o they_o that_o be_v free_a from_o they_o be_v notwithstanding_o these_o difference_n both_o of_o one_o communion_n and_o therefore_o the_o circumstance_n by_o they_o require_v in_o these_o mutation_n can_v be_v show_v as_o it_o will_v easy_o appear_v by_o these_o instance_n follow_v chap._n 14._o of_o diverse_a particular_a error_n which_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n who_o first_o author_n can_v be_v name_v the_o opinion_n of_o two_o resurrection_n of_o man_n body_n the_o first_o of_o the_o know●…_n good_a the_o second_o of_o the_o wicked_a there_o be_v between_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v a_o error_n but_o the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v not_o know_v for_o i_o hope_v the_o romanist_n will_v not_o say_v the_o father_n learn_v it_o of_o any_o heretic_n the_o first_o author_n of_o it_o the_o opinion_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a be_v in_o hell_n and_o see_v not_o god_n till_o the_o general_a resurrection_n be_v a_o error_n but_o they_o can_v tell_v who_o be_v the_o first_o author_n of_o it_o the_o opinion_n that_o all_o catholic_a christian_n how_o wicked_a soever_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v save_v as_o by_o fire_n be_v a_o error_n but_o the_o author_n be_v not_o know_v the_o opinion_n that_o man_n be_v elelect_v for_o the_o foresight_n of_o some_o thing_n in_o themselves_o be_v a_o error_n or_o else_o the_o doctrine_n of_o augustine_n who_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n sometime_o but_o afterward_o condemn_v it_o in_o himself_o and_o other_o the_o opinion_n that_o infant_n can_v not_o be_v save_v unless_o they_o be_v not_o only_o baptize_v but_o do_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n be_v anerrour_n but_o the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v not_o know_v the_o opinion_n that_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la the_o maccabee_n and_o the_o like_a be_v apocryphal_a and_o that_o they_o be_v canonical_a be_v contradictory_n and_o the_o one_o of_o they_o a_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o that_o error_n know_v the_o innumerable_a contradictory_n opinion_n hold_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v matter_n of_o faith_n errate_n as_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v sovereign_a temporal_a lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n hold_v of_o he_o in_o fee_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o that_o he_o may_v depose_v king_n err_v in_o faith_n and_o persecute_v the_o faithful_a and_o that_o he_o may_v not_o that_o papal_o he_o can_v err_v and_o that_o he_o may_v and_o sometime_o do_v and_o many_o other_o like_a must_v needs_o be_v error_n on_o the_o one_o side_n or_o other_o yet_o be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o those_o error_n to_o be_v nominate_v militis_fw-la it_o be_v doubtless_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n the_o custom_n of_o the_o western_a or_o latin_a church_n aswell_o as_o of_o the_o rest_n to_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n when_o and_o where_o that_o custom_n of_o communicate_v the_o lay-people_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n begin_v can_v be_v precise_o note_v 70._o it_o be_v the_o custom_n to_o impose_v penance_n first_o and_o after_o the_o performance_n of_o it_o to_o give_v absolution_n now_o absolution_n be_v first_o give_v and_o then_o penance_n impose_v to_o be_v perform_v afterward_o when_o this_o alteration_n begin_v it_o can_v be_v note_v 2._o it_o be_v the_o general_a opinion_n that_o mary_n be_v conceive_v in_o sin_n it_o grow_v afterwards_o to_o be_v general_o think_v she_o be_v not_o the_o first_o author_n of_o this_o latter_a opinion_n can_v be_v know_v nor_o of_o the_o former_a neither_o as_o i_o suppose_v poenis_fw-la the_o custom_n be_v to_o grant_v indulgence_n or_o relaxation_n only_o from_o enjoin_v penance_n the_o form_n of_o these_o be_v afterward_o alter_v i_o think_v it_o can_v hardly_o be_v note_v by_o who_o etc._n etc._n 11._o the_o custom_n be_v on_o the_o day_n which_o they_o keep_v as_o fasting-day_n not_o to_o eat_v till_o three_o a_o clock_n in_o the_o afternoon_n or_o till_o the_o even_a so_o that_o to_o dine_v and_o not_o to_o
gaze_v on_o and_o adore_v to_o drive_v away_o devil_n to_o still_o tempest_n to_o stay_v the_o overflow_a of_o water_n to_o quench_v and_o extinguish_v consume_v and_o waste_v fire_n but_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o and_o with_o the_o sanctify_a element_n only_o in_o reference_n to_o the_o use_v appoint_v that_o be_v that_o man_n shall_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o it_o this_o participation_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a use_n be_v first_o and_o principal_o in_o the_o public_a assembly_n second_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o manner_n of_o many_o be_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o it_o present_o but_o to_o carry_v it_o home_o with_o they_o and_o to_o receive_v it_o private_o when_o they_o be_v dispose_v militis_fw-la as_o tertullian_n and_o other_o do_v report_n finem_fw-la three_o the_o manner_n be_v to_o send_v it_o by_o the_o deacon_n to_o they_o that_o by_o sickness_n or_o other_o necessary_a impediment_n be_v force_v to_o be_v absent_a 23._o and_o to_o stranger_n yea_o for_o this_o purpose_n they_o do_v in_o such_o place_n where_o they_o communicate_v not_o every_o day_n reserve_v some_o part_n of_o the_o sanctify_a element_n to_o be_v send_v to_o the_o sick_a and_o such_o as_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o death_n ●…38_n this_o reservation_n be_v not_o general_o observe_v as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o clemens_n prescribe_v that_o so_o much_o only_o shall_v be_v provide_v for_o the_o outward_a matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o may_v suffice_v the_o communicant_n and_o that_o if_o any_o thing_n remain_v it_o shall_v present_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o clergy_n neither_o can_v there_o be_v any_o place_n for_o or_o use_v of_o reservation_n where_o there_o be_v a_o daily_a communion_n as_o in_o many_o place_n there_o be_v nor_o in_o any_o place_n for_o such_o reservation_n as_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o week_n and_o month_n see_v there_o be_v general_o in_o ancient_a time_n in_o all_o place_n twice_o a_o week_n or_o at_o least_o once_o every_o week_n a_o communion_n from_o whence_o they_o may_v be_v supply_v that_o be_v absent_a the_o romanist_n consecrate_v every_o day_n but_o make_v their_o reservation_n from_o some_o solemn_a time_n of_o communicate_v as_o easter_n or_o the_o like_a and_o this_o not_o only_o or_o principal_o for_o the_o purpose_n of_o communicate_v any_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n but_o for_o circumgestation_n ostentation_n and_o adoration_n to_o which_o end_n the_o father_n never_o use_v it_o neither_o be_v that_o which_o be_v thus_o unto_o this_o purpose_n reserve_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o our_o divine_n do_v most_o true_o pronounce_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v as_o rhenanus_fw-la testify_v if_o any_o part_n of_o the_o consecrate_a element_n remain_v so_o long_o as_o to_o be_v musty_a and_o unfit_a for_o use_v to_o consume_v they_o with_o fire_n which_o i_o think_v they_o will_v not_o have_v do_v to_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n this_o show_v they_o think_v the_o sanctify_a element_n to_o be_v christ_n body_n no_o long_o than_o they_o may_v serve_v for_o the_o comfortable_a instruction_n of_o the_o faithful_a by_o partake_v in_o they_o but_o the_o romanist_n at_o this_o day_n as_o the_o same_o rhenanus_fw-la fit_o observe_v will_v think_v it_o a_o great_a and_o horrible_a impiety_n to_o do_v that_o which_o the_o father_n then_o prescribe_v and_o practise_v so_o then_o caluine_n do_v think_v that_o the_o romish_a reservation_n do_v not_o carry_v about_o with_o it_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o papist_n foolish_o fancy_n and_o yet_o i_o hope_v be_v in_o no_o heresy_n at_o all_o neither_o do_v he_o any_o where_o say_v that_o the_o element_n consecrate_v and_o reserve_v for_o a_o time_n in_o reference_n to_o a_o ensue_a receive_v of_o they_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o say_v only_o that_o there_o be_v long_o since_o great_a abuse_n in_o reservation_n and_o great_a in_o that_o every_o one_o be_v permit_v to_o take_v the_o sacrament_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o public_a minister_n in_o the_o church_n and_o carry_v it_o home_o with_o he_o which_o i_o think_v this_o cardinal_n will_v not_o deny_v if_o he_o advise_o bethink_v himself_o chap._n 35._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o eutiches_n false_o impute_v to_o the_o divine_n of_o germany_n the_o next_o heresy_n impute_v unto_o we_o be_v eutichianisme_n which_o be_v direct_o opposite_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o former_a error_n of_o nestorius_n this_o he_o charge_v first_o upon_o zuinck_o feldius_fw-la who_o we_o reject_v as_o a_o frantic_a &_o seduce_a miscreant_n and_o do_v in_o no_o wise_n acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o our_o church_n second_o upon_o brentius_n jacobus_n smidelinus_n and_o other_o learned_a divine_n of_o the_o german_a church_n the_o heresy_n of_o eutiches_n be_v that_o as_o before_o so_o after_o the_o incarnation_n there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a nature_n in_o christ_n for_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v turn_v into_o man_n that_o there_o be_v a_o confusion_n of_o these_o nature_n do_v any_o of_o the_o german_a divine_n teach_v this_o blasphemous_a doctrine_n no_o say_v bellarmine_n not_o direct_o and_o in_o precise_a term_n but_o indirect_o and_o by_o consequent_a they_o do_v if_o we_o demand_v of_o he_o what_o that_o be_v which_o they_o teach_v whence_o this_o impiety_n may_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n be_v infer_v he_o answer_v the_o ubiquitary_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ._n for_o say_v he_o ubiquity_n be_v a_o incommunicable_a property_n of_o god_n it_o can_v be_v communicate_v to_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n without_o confusion_n of_o the_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n but_o he_o shall_v remember_v that_o they_o who_o he_o thus_o odious_o traduce_v be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o think_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v a_o finite_a and_o limit_a nature_n be_v every_o where_o by_o actual_a position_n or_o local_a extension_n but_o personal_o only_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o conjunction_n and_o union_n it_o have_v with_o god_n by_o reason_n whereof_o it_o be_v no_o where_o sever_v from_o god_n who_o be_v every_o where_o this_o be_v it_o then_o which_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v remain_v in_o nature_n and_o essence_n finite_a limit_v and_o bound_v and_o be_v local_o in_o one_o place_n but_o that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n where_o it_o be_v not_o unite_v personal_o unto_o that_o god_n that_o be_v everywhere_a in_o which_o sense_n they_o think_v it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v everywhere_a for_o the_o better_a clear_n of_o this_o point_n we_o must_v remember_v that_o it_o be_v agree_v upon_o by_o all_o catholic_a divine_n that_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n have_v two_o kind_n of_o be_v the_o one_o natural_a the_o other_o personal_a the_o first_o limit_v and_o finite_a the_o second_o infinite_a and_o incomprehensible_a for_o see_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v a_o create_a nature_n and_o essence_n it_o can_v be_v but_o finite_a 8._o and_o see_v it_o have_v no_o personal_a subsistence_n of_o it_o own_o but_o that_o of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n communicate_v to_o it_o which_o be_v infinite_a and_o without_o limitation_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v to_o have_v a_o infinite_a subsistence_n and_o to_o subsist_v in_o a_o incomprehensible_a and_o illimited_a sort_n and_o consequent_o everywhere_a thus_o than_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n secundum_fw-la esse_fw-la naturale_fw-la be_v contain_v in_o one_o place_n but_o secundum_fw-la esse_fw-la personale_fw-la may_v right_o be_v say_v to_o be_v everywhere_a it_o be_v easy_a to_o reconcile_v all_o those_o assertion_n of_o our_o divine_n touch_v this_o part_n of_o christian_a faith_n in_o show_n so_o opposite_a one_o to_o another_o and_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o our_o prattle_a adversary_n who_o so_o greedy_o seek_v out_o our_o verbal_a &_o seem_a difference_n whereas_o their_o whole_a doctrine_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o heap_n of_o uncertainty_n and_o contrariety_n if_o this_o be_v a_o fit_a place_n but_o let_v this_o brief_o suffice_v for_o the_o repel_v of_o bellarmine_n calumniation_n and_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o examine_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o objection_n chap._n 36._o of_o the_o suppose_a heresy_n of_o zenaias_n persa_n impugn_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n the_o next_o heresy_n he_o impute_v unto_o we_o be_v the_o impugn_v of_o the_o adoration_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o first_o author_n of_o which_o impiety_n as_o this_o impious_a idolater_n be_v please_v to_o name_v it_o be_v zenaias_n persa_n as_o nicephorus_n report_v but_o whatsoever_o the_o jesuite_n think_v nicephorus_n credit_n be_v not_o so_o good_a
that_o upon_o his_o bare_a word_n we_o shall_v believe_v so_o shameless_a a_o lie_n for_o augustine_n which_o be_v before_o this_o persian_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr moribus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la libro_fw-la primo_fw-la capite_fw-la tricesimo_fw-la quarto_fw-la have_v the_o same_o heresy_n as_o it_o please_v these_o heretic_n to_o call_v it_o nolite_fw-la inquit_fw-la consectari_fw-la turbas_fw-la imperitorum_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o ipsà_fw-la verâ_fw-la religione_fw-la superstitiosi_fw-la sunt_fw-la novi_fw-la multos_fw-la esse_fw-la sepulchrorum_fw-la &_o picturarum_fw-la adoratores_fw-la quos_fw-la mores_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la condemnat_fw-la &_o quotidiè_fw-la corrigere_fw-la studet_fw-la and_o collocatum_fw-la gregory_n after_o the_o time_n of_o this_o suppose_a persian_a do_v condemn_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o 14._o the_o council_n of_o frankford_n likewise_o after_o his_o time_n as_o appear_v by_o hincmarus_n and_o other_o beside_o if_o nicephorus_n follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n he_o mean_v nothing_o else_o by_o that_o adoration_n of_o image_n which_o he_o approve_v but_o the_o embrace_v kiss_v and_o reverend_a use_v of_o they_o like_v to_o the_o honour_n we_o do_v the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n not_o that_o religious_a worship_n which_o consist_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n which_o the_o papist_n yield_v to_o their_o idol_n and_o so_o there_o be_v as_o great_a difference_n of_o judgement_n between_o he_o and_o bellarmine_n as_o between_o he_o and_o us._n etc._n that_o which_o bellarmine_n add_v against_o caluine_n and_o other_o touch_v the_o time_n that_o image_n be_v first_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n if_o this_o place_n do_v require_v the_o examination_n of_o it_o we_o shall_v find_v he_o as_o notable_a a_o trifler_n therein_o as_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n chap._n 37_o of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o lampetian_o touch_v vow_n the_o error_n of_o the_o lampetian_o be_v as_o alphonsus_n à_fw-fr castro_n suppose_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o man_n to_o vow_n and_o by_o vow_v to_o lay_v a_o necessity_n upon_o themselves_o of_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o free_o and_o without_o any_o such_o tie_n may_v much_o better_o be_v perform_v if_o they_o dislike_v simple_o all_o vow_v we_o do_v not_o approve_v their_o opinion_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o kemnisius_n zanchius_n and_o other_o have_v write_v to_o this_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v unjust_o say_v to_o favour_v their_o error_n that_o which_o bellarmine_n add_v for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o this_o his_o unjust_a imputation_n be_v a_o mere_a calumniation_n for_o luther_n do_v not_o say_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v vow_v to_o do_v a_o thing_n as_o long_o as_o he_o shall_v be_v please_v and_o then_o to_o be_v free_a again_o when_o he_o shall_v dislike_v that_o which_o before_o he_o resolve_v on_o but_o that_o all_o vow_n shall_v be_v make_v with_o limitation_n vow_v to_o be_v so_o far_o perform_v as_o humane_a frailty_n will_v permit_v &_o that_o it_o be_v better_a after_o a_o vow_n make_v to_o break_v it_o &_o to_o descend_v to_o the_o do_v of_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a &_o good_a though_o not_o carry_v so_o great_a show_n of_o perfection_n as_o that_o which_o by_o vow_n be_v promise_v than_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o keep_v it_o to_o live_v in_o all_o dissolute_a wickedness_n as_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o popish_a votary_n be_v dissolve_v whereupon_o the_o father_n be_v clear_a that_o marriage_n after_o a_o vow_n make_v of_o single_a life_n be_v lawful_a and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v than_o continue_v single_a to_o live_v lewd_o and_o wanton_o chap._n 38._o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o certain_a touch_v the_o verity_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n communicate_v to_o we_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o last_o heresy_n may_v well_o have_v be_v omit_v for_o those_o heretic_n condemn_v by_o inventionem_fw-la theodoret_n ignatius_n and_o other_o deny_v the_o verity_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n and_o thereupon_o condemn_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o impugn_n of_o popish_a transubstantiation_n as_o bellarmine_n idle_o fanci_v that_o be_v reprove_v in_o they_o but_o the_o deny_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o all_o true_a christian_n do_v know_v to_o be_v mystical_o communicate_v to_o they_o in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o their_o unspeakable_a comfort_n how_o then_o can_v we_o be_v charge_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o these_o man_n see_v we_o neither_o deny_v the_o verity_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n nor_o make_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v a_o naked_a figure_n or_o similitude_n only_o but_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o consist_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o one_o earthly_a and_o the_o other_o heavenly_a and_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o communicate_v to_o we_o though_o neither_o capernaitical_o to_o be_v tear_v with_o the_o tooth_n nor_o popish_o to_o be_v swallow_v and_o carry_v down_o into_o the_o stomach_n and_o belly_n thus_o than_o we_o see_v how_o fond_o this_o cardinal_n heretic_n have_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v we_o heretic_n and_o to_o hold_v the_o old_a condemn_a heresy_n of_o those_o curse_a arch-heretike_n who_o frenzy_n we_o condemn_v much_o more_o than_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n do_v so_o that_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o demonstrate_v either_o our_o consent_n with_o condemn_a heretic_n that_o be_v of_o old_a or_o their_o consent_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o consequent_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o profession_n that_o contrary_o all_o that_o be_v not_o blind_v with_o partiality_n may_v easy_o see_v that_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o confuse_a mixture_n of_o error_n and_o all_o that_o they_o write_v against_o we_o nothing_o but_o mere_a calumniation_n &_o slander_n chap._n 39_o of_o succession_n and_o the_o exception_n of_o the_o adversary_n against_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o suppose_a want_n of_o it_o thus_o then_o have_v take_v a_o view_n of_o whatsoever_o they_o can_v or_o do_v allege_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o first_o note_n of_o the_o church_n assign_v by_o they_o 5._o let_v we_o come_v unto_o the_o second_o which_o be_v succession_n and_o see_v if_o they_o have_v any_o better_a success_n in_o it_o than_o in_o the_o former_a in_o what_o sense_n succession_n may_v be_v grant_v to_o be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o have_v show_v already_o let_v we_o therefore_o see_v how_o and_o what_o our_o adversary_n conclude_v from_o thence_o against_o we_o or_o for_o themselves_o by_o this_o note_n say_v they_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n luciferianos_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la say_v hierome_n against_o the_o luciferian_o it_o can_v be_v no_o church_n that_o have_v no_o ministry_n and_o cyprian_a to_o the_o same_o purpose_n pronounce_v that_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o plebs_fw-la episcopo_fw-la adunata_fw-la thus_o therefore_o from_o these_o authority_n 10._o they_o reason_v where_o there_o be_v no_o ministry_n there_o be_v no_o church_n but_o among_o the_o protestant_n there_o be_v no_o ministry_n therefore_o no_o church_n the_o minor_a proposition_n or_o assumption_n of_o this_o argument_n we_o deny_v which_o they_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v in_o this_o sort_n there_o be_v no_o lawful_a call_n to_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n among_o the_o protestant_n therefore_o no_o ministry_n the_o defect_n they_o suppose_v to_o be_v in_o the_o call_n of_o our_o bishop_n and_o minister_n be_v two_o fold_n first_o for_o that_o they_o that_o ordain_v they_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o alteration_n of_o thing_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n so_o to_o do_v second_o for_o that_o no_o man_n may_v be_v ordain_v but_o into_o a_o void_a place_n either_o wherein_o there_o never_o be_v any_o pastor_n or_o bishop_n before_o as_o in_o church_n in_o their_o first_o foundation_n or_o wherein_o there_o have_v be_v their_o place_n be_v now_o void_a by_o the_o death_n deprivation_n or_o voluntary_a relinquishment_n of_o they_o that_o possess_v it_o before_o that_o so_o they_o who_o be_v new_o elect_v and_o ordain_v may_v succeed_v into_o the_o void_a room_n of_o such_o as_o go_v before_o they_o and_o not_o intrude_v upon_o their_o charge_n whereunto_o they_o be_v still_o just_o entitle_v our_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n be_v ordain_v and_o place_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o religion_n where_o there_o be_v bishop_n already_o in_o actual_a possession_n these_o be_v the_o defect_n which_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v in_o the_o call_n of_o our_o bishop_n &_o minister_n let_v
thing_n and_o to_o be_v but_o verbal_a upon_o mistake_v through_o the_o hasty_a and_o inconsiderate_a humour_n of_o some_o man_n than_o any_o thing_n else_o yea_o i_o dare_v confident_o pronounce_v that_o after_o due_a and_o full_a examination_n of_o each_o other_o meaning_n 35._o there_o shall_v be_v no_o difference_n find_v touch_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o ubiquitary_a presence_n or_o the_o like_a between_o the_o church_n reform_v by_o luther_n ministry_n in_o germany_n and_o other_o place_n and_o those_o who_o some_o man_n malice_n call_v sacramentary_n that_o none_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o sight_n melancthon_n and_o illyricus_n except_v about_o certain_a ceremony_n be_v real_a that_o hosiander_n hold_v no_o private_a opinion_n of_o justification_n howsoever_o his_o strange_a manner_n of_o speak_v give_v occasion_n to_o many_o so_o to_o think_v and_o conceive_v and_o this_o shall_v be_v justify_v against_o the_o proud_a papist_n of_o they_o all_o but_o say_v bellarmine_n your_o church_n be_v so_o tear_v and_o rend_v with_o dangerous_a division_n that_o not_o only_o one_o of_o you_o dissent_v from_o another_o but_o the_o same_o man_n often_o time_n from_o himself_o and_o herein_o give_v instance_n in_o luther_n who_o judgement_n vary_v in_o divers_a thing_n of_o great_a consequence_n touch_v luther_n we_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v a_o most_o worthy_a divine_a as_o the_o world_n have_v any_o in_o those_o time_n wherein_o he_o live_v or_o in_o many_o age_n before_o &_o that_o for_o the_o clear_n of_o sundry_a point_n of_o great_a moment_n in_o our_o christian_a profession_n much_o obscure_v &_o entangle_v before_o with_o the_o intricate_a dispute_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o romish_a sophister_n as_o of_o the_o power_n of_o nature_n of_o free_a will_n grace_n justification_n the_o difference_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n faith_n and_o work_v christian_a liberty_n and_o the_o like_a all_o succeed_a age_n shall_v ever_o be_v bind_v to_o honour_v his_o happy_a memory_n in_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o be_v ever_o constant_a yea_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o perfect_o apprehend_v and_o to_o the_o great_a joy_n of_o many_o man_n heart_n deliver_v both_o by_o word_n and_o writing_n before_o he_o depart_v from_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n and_o out_o of_o these_o and_o more_o diligent_a search_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n than_o be_v usual_a in_o those_o time_n by_o degree_n see_v and_o descry_v those_o popish_a error_n which_o at_o first_o he_o discern_v not_o that_o herein_o he_o proceed_v by_o degree_n and_o in_o his_o late_a write_n dislike_v that_o which_o in_o his_o former_a he_o do_v approve_v be_v not_o so_o strange_a a_o thing_n as_o our_o adversary_n will_v make_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v do_v not_o augustine_n the_o great_a of_o all_o the_o father_n and_o worthy_a divine_a the_o church_n of_o god_n ever_o have_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n write_v a_o whole_a book_n of_o retractation_n do_v we_o not_o careful_o observe_v what_o thing_n he_o write_v when_o he_o be_v but_o a_o presbyter_n and_o what_o when_o he_o be_v make_v a_o bishop_n what_o before_o he_o enter_v into_o conflict_n with_o the_o pelagian_n and_o what_o afterward_o do_v he_o not_o former_o attribute_v the_o election_n of_o those_o that_o be_v choose_v to_o eternal_a life_n to_o the_o foresight_n of_o faith_n which_o afterward_o he_o disclaim_v as_o a_o mere_a pelagian_n conceit_n so_o that_o his_o adversary_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o prosper_n and_o hillarius_n do_v not_o only_o charge_v he_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o father_n but_o to_o himself_o also_o do_v cis_fw-la not_o ambrose_n in_o his_o time_n complain_v that_o he_o be_v force_v to_o teach_v before_o he_o have_v learn_v and_o so_o to_o deliver_v many_o thing_n that_o shall_v need_v and_o require_v a_o second_o review_v do_v not_o their_o angelical_a doctor_n in_o his_o sum_n of_o theology_n correct_v and_o alter_v many_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v write_v before_o let_v not_o our_o adversary_n therefore_o insult_v upon_o luther_n for_o that_o he_o see_v not_o all_o the_o abomination_n of_o popery_n at_o the_o first_o but_o let_v they_o rather_o consider_v of_o and_o yield_v to_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o the_o ●_o request_n which_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o work_n he_o make_v to_o all_o christian_a and_o well_o mind_a reader_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o will_v read_v his_o book_n and_o write_n with_o judgement_n and_o with_o much_o commisseration_n and_o remember_v that_o he_o be_v sometime_o a_o friar_n nourish_v in_o the_o error_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n so_o that_o it_o be_v more_o painful_a to_o he_o to_o forget_v those_o thing_n he_o have_v former_o ill_a learned_a than_o to_o learn_v anew_o that_o which_o be_v good_a but_o say_v they_o luther_n himself_o witness_v that_o contrariety_n and_o cotradiction_n be_v a_o note_n of_o falsehood_n and_o therefore_o his_o write_n be_v contradictory_n the_o late_a to_o the_o former_a his_o whole_a doctrine_n must_v needs_o be_v false_a even_o in_o his_o own_o judgement_n let_v they_o that_o thus_o reason_n against_o luther_n know_v that_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o whosoever_o retract_v and_o correct_v that_o he_o former_o teach_v be_v thereby_o convince_a of_o falsehood_n and_o his_o whole_a doctrine_n prove_v to_o be_v erroneous_a but_o that_o those_o assertion_n that_o do_v imply_v contradicton_n and_o contrariety_n that_o stand_v whole_o upon_o doubtful_a uncertain_a &_o perplex_a dispute_n and_o so_o overthrow_v themselves_o do_v thereby_o appear_v to_o be_v false_a of_o which_o nature_n be_v all_o the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o romish_a doctrine_n for_o example_n transubstantiation_n be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o popish_a religion_n and_o all_o papist_n at_o this_o day_n do_v firm_o hold_v and_o believe_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v demonstrative_o prove_v by_o their_o own_o best_a divine_n that_o such_o a_o total_a conversion_n or_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n into_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v impossible_a &_o imply_v in_o it_o sundry_a contradiction_n &_o consequence_n of_o horrible_a impiety_n 1._o for_o be_v it_o not_o employ_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o transubstantiation_n or_o total_a conversion_n of_o one_o substance_n into_o another_o that_o the_o one_o must_v succeed_v the_o other_o in_o be_v and_o that_o the_o former_a must_v cease_v to_o be_v &_o the_o late_a thereupon_o begin_v to_o be_v whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o late_a of_o the_o two_o substance_n into_o which_o the_o conversion_n be_v make_v be_v not_o nor_o have_v no_o be_v before_o now_o what_o great_a blasphemy_n can_v there_o be_v than_o to_o think_v christ_n body_n have_v no_o be_v till_o the_o massing_n priest_n have_v wrought_v this_o miraculous_a transubstantiation_n it_o be_v true_a that_o one_o substance_n may_v be_v change_v into_o another_o as_o be_v lot_n wife_n into_o a_o pillar_n of_o salt_n but_o that_o one_o substance_n shall_v pass_v and_o be_v total_o transubstantiate_v into_o another_o have_v the_o same_o be_v without_o all_o difference_n before_o the_o suppose_a transubstantiation_n that_o after_o it_o have_v and_o nothing_o be_v new_a in_o it_o in_o respect_n of_o substance_n or_o be_v imply_v a_o contradiction_n and_o therefore_o the_o sacramental_a element_n can_v be_v transubstantiate_v into_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n that_o which_o bellarmine_n have_v out_o of_o scotus_n of_o transubstantiatio_fw-la productiva_fw-la and_o adductiva_fw-la be_v the_o most_o childish_a folly_n that_o ever_o be_v for_o this_o be_v that_o he_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n be_v annihilate_v and_o they_o return_v into_o that_o nothing_o out_o of_o which_o they_o be_v former_o take_v and_o then_o christ_n body_n come_v into_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v before_o therefore_o the_o one_o substance_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v change_v into_o the_o other_o if_o this_o reason_n be_v good_a when_o one_o man_n remove_v out_o of_o his_o place_n into_o which_o another_o upon_o his_o remove_n do_v enter_v the_o former_a may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o late_a for_o as_o the_o former_a of_o the_o two_o suppose_a man_n go_v out_o of_o his_o place_n into_o some_o other_o whereupon_o the_o other_o succee_v he_o not_o in_o be_v but_o in_o place_n so_o the_o sacramental_a element_n go_v out_o of_o their_o place_n and_o return_v to_o that_o nothing_o out_o of_o which_o they_o be_v create_v and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n succee_v they_o not_o in_o be_v which_o it_o have_v the_o very_a same_o while_n they_o be_v but_o in_o place_n ●_o neither_o can_v this_o suppose_a conversion_n of_o the_o element_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o rather_o of_o
that_o so_o many_o of_o we_o as_o shall_v receive_v the_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o son_n by_o partake_v of_o this_o altar_n may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o benediction_n and_o grace_n through_o the_o same_o christ_n our_o lord_n amen_n and_o after_o the_o communion_n they_o pray_v again_o in_o this_o sort_n grant_v lord_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v with_o a_o pure_a mind_n what_o we_o have_v receive_v with_o the_o mouth_n and_o again_o let_v this_o communion_n o_o lord_n purge_v we_o from_o sin_n and_o make_v we_o partaker_n of_o the_o heavenly_a remedy_n whereupon_o micrologus_n infer_v that_o they_o must_v not_o neglect_v to_o communicate_v that_o think_v to_o have_v any_o benefit_n by_o these_o prayer_n these_o prayer_n remain_v as_o witness_n of_o the_o old_a observation_n 53._o durandus_fw-la say_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n all_o that_o be_v present_a at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v wont_a to_o communicate_v every_o day_n and_o that_o to_o this_o purpose_n they_o do_v offer_v a_o great_a loaf_n that_o may_v suffice_v for_o the_o communicate_v of_o they_o all_o which_o custom_n say_v he_o the_o grecian_n be_v say_v to_o keep_v still_o afterward_o when_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n increase_v and_o devotion_n decrease_v it_o be_v ordain_v that_o at_o least_o every_o sunday_n they_o shall_v communicate_v in_o process_n of_o time_n when_o this_o can_v not_o be_v keep_v there_o be_v a_o communicent_fw-la three_o constitution_n that_o at_o least_o thrice_o every_o year_n each_o christian_a man_n shall_v communicate_v if_o not_o often_o in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v order_v that_o at_o the_o least_o at_o easter_n every_o one_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o instead_o of_o the_o daily_a communicate_v the_o priest_n give_v daily_a the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n to_o the_o minister_n say_v in_o some_o place_n take_v you_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n and_o love_n that_o you_o may_v be_v fit_a for_o these_o sacred_a mystery_n which_o be_v word_n that_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v use_v when_o they_o use_v to_o salute_v one_o another_o before_o the_o communion_n &_o do_v import_v a_o ensue_a communion_n 56._o the_o anthem_n which_o be_v name_v post_fw-la communio_fw-la be_v so_o name_v because_o it_o be_v sing_v after_o the_o communicate_v or_o in_o sign_n that_o the_o communion_n be_v past_a for_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n all_o the_o faithful_a do_v daily_a communicate_v and_o present_o after_o their_o communicate_v this_o song_n be_v sing_v that_o it_o may_v appear_v the_o people_n do_v give_v thanks_o to_o god_n for_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v canonem_fw-la odo_n cameracensis_n say_v that_o in_o old_a time_n there_o be_v no_o mass_n celebrate_v without_o some_o assembly_n of_o such_o as_o may_v offer_v together_o with_o he_o that_o celebrate_v &_o partake_v with_o he_o of_o the_o sacrament_n 1._o general_o we_o may_v say_v say_v durandus_fw-la that_o that_o be_v a_o lawful_a mass_n at_o which_o be_v present_a the_o priest_n such_o as_o answer_v unto_o he_o &_o such_o as_o offer_v &_o communicate_v and_o 22._o walafridus_n strabo_n agree_v with_o he_o say_v that_o the_o very_a form_n of_o the_o prayer_n use_v in_o the_o mass_n show_v so_o much_o where_o there_o be_v mention_v express_o make_v of_o such_o as_o offer_v &_o communicate_v and_o the_o book_n of_o ecclesiastical_a observation_n entitle_v micrologus_fw-la write_v 500_o year_n since_o say_v it_o be_v to_o be_v know_v that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a father_n only_o the_o communicant_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n and_o that_o the_o catechuman_n &_o penitent_n be_v all_o send_v out_o as_o not_o be_v fit_a to_o communicate_v which_o the_o very_a form_n of_o celebrate_v import_v in_o which_o the_o priest_n pray_v not_o for_o his_o own_o oblation_n &_o communion_n alone_o but_o that_o of_o other_o also_o &_o especial_o in_o the_o prayer_n after_o the_o communion_n he_o seem_v to_o pray_v only_o for_o the_o communicant_n neither_o can_v it_o proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o communion_n unless_o diverse_a do_v partake_v of_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n 3_o chrysostome_n write_v upon_o the_o ephesian_n say_v that_o he_o that_o stand_v by_o and_o communicate_v not_o be_v impudent_a and_o shameless_a and_o that_o not_o only_o they_o that_o sit_v down_o at_o table_n but_o they_o that_o be_v present_a at_o this_o feast_n without_o their_o wedding_n garment_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o fearful_a judgement_n for_o the_o master_n of_o the_o feast_n will_v not_o ask_v friend_n how_o dare_v thou_o sit_v down_o but_o how_o dare_v thou_o come_v in_o not_o have_v thy_o wedding_n garment_n thou_o abide_v thou_o sing_v the_o himme_a with_o the_o rest_n thou_o profess_v thyself_o worthy_a in_o that_o thou_o go_v not_o out_o with_o the_o unworthy_a how_o dare_v thou_o abide_v and_o not_o communicate_v they_o that_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o penitency_n be_v command_v out_o if_o thou_o be_v in_o thy_o sin_n how_o continue_v thou_o if_o thou_o be_v unworthy_a of_o the_o sacramental_a participation_n thou_o be_v so_o also_o of_o the_o communion_n in_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o spirit_n descend_v and_o come_v by_o they_o aswell_o as_o by_o the_o mystery_n there_o propose_v and_o sure_o how_o any_o can_v be_v present_a that_o be_v not_o fit_a at_o least_o in_o desire_n and_o in_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o be_v to_o communicate_v i_o know_v not_o in_o old_a time_n they_o communicate_v every_o day_n or_o so_o often_o that_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o communicate_v every_o day_n and_o the_o holy_a canon_n debar_v all_o such_o as_o do_v not_o communicate_v from_o hear_v of_o the_o mass_n as_o it_o appear_v de_fw-fr consecr_n do_v 2._o can_n peract_v caietan_n in_o 3_o aquinat_fw-la q_o 80._o art_n 12._o yet_o so_o do_v devotion_n decay_v and_o abuse_n grow_v that_o in_o many_o place_n the_o whole_a people_n stay_v and_o be_v present_a yet_o none_o but_o the_o clergy_n alone_o communicate_v and_o afterward_o none_o but_o the_o deacon_n and_o subdeacon_n whence_o it_o come_v that_o whereas_o the_o mystical_a bread_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v break_v into_o 3_o part_n whereof_o the_o first_o be_v for_o he_o that_o celebrate_v the_o 2_o for_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o 3_o for_o the_o people_n 54._o in_o time_n it_o be_v so_o order_v that_o a_o division_n be_v make_v into_o 3_o part_n he_o take_v the_o one_o to_o himself_o &_o give_v the_o other_o two_o to_o the_o deacon_n and_o subdeacon_n and_o in_o some_o place_n do_v eat_v all_o himself_o whatsoever_o the_o neglect_n or_o abuse_n be_v 24._o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o composition_n of_o the_o canon_n that_o the_o mystical_a action_n in_o which_o the_o canon_n be_v use_v be_v public_a &_o that_o there_o be_v always_o some_o present_a that_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n together_o with_o the_o priest_n &_o participate_v of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o these_o word_n do_v clear_o show_v quotquot_fw-la ex_fw-la hac_fw-la altaris_fw-la participatione_fw-la sacrosanctum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la sumpserimus_fw-la item_n prosint_fw-la nobis_fw-la domini_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la 220._o quae_fw-la sumpsimus_fw-la and_o therefore_o john_n hofmeister_n a_o learned_a man_n expound_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o mass_n have_v these_o word_n res_fw-la ipsa_fw-la inquit_fw-la clamat_fw-la tam_fw-la in_o graecâ_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o latinâ_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la sacerdoten_a sacrificantem_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o reliquos_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la diaconos_fw-la nec_fw-la non_fw-la &_o reliquam_fw-la plebem_fw-la aut_fw-la saltem_fw-la plebis_fw-la aliquam_fw-la partem_fw-la communicasse_fw-la quod_fw-la quomodo_fw-la cessaverit_fw-la mirandum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la bone_fw-la ille_fw-la usus_fw-la in_o ecclesiam_fw-la revocetur_fw-la laborandum_fw-la that_o be_v the_o thing_n itself_o proclaim_v it_o that_o aswell_o in_o the_o greek_a as_o latin_a church_n not_o only_o the_o priest_n which_o sacrifice_v but_o the_o other_o priest_n and_o deacons_n also_o yea_o and_o the_o people_n or_o at_o least_o some_o part_n of_o they_o do_v communicate_v which_o good_a custom_n how_o it_o grow_v out_o of_o use_n i_o know_v not_o but_o sure_o we_o shall_v labour_v to_o bring_v it_o in_o again_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o priest_n to_o celebrate_v without_o the_o deacon_n who_o be_v to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n at_o his_o hand_n 25._o cusanus_fw-la show_v by_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o missal_n sumpsimus_fw-la domini_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la we_o have_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o ●_o interim_n publish_v by_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o in_o the_o assembly_n at_o augusta_n in_o the_o 15_o of_o may_n 1548_o we_o find_v these_o word_n atque_fw-la hic_fw-la expedierit_fw-la cum_fw-la verissimum_fw-la
merit_n in_o that_o it_o augment_v devotion_n enlarge_v the_o apprehension_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v a_o more_o complete_a &_o full_a receive_n and_o again_o 31._o the_o receive_n under_o both_o kind_n which_o manner_n of_o receive_v the_o lord_n deliver_v be_v of_o more_o efficacy_n and_o compliment_n and_o he_o that_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n only_o do_v not_o perfect_o receive_v the_o same_o in_o respect_n of_o sacramental_a receive_n with_o he_o agree_v 13._o albertus_n magnus_fw-la 1._o petrus_n de_fw-fr palude_fw-la 2._o bonaventura_n and_o sundry_a other_o by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o though_o they_o give_v way_n to_o the_o custom_n that_o grow_v in_o and_o begin_v to_o prevail_v in_o their_o time_n yet_o they_o signify_v and_o sufficient_o express_v that_o in_o their_o opinion_n the_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n as_o christ_n at_o first_o do_v institute_v and_o the_o church_n for_o a_o long_a time_n observe_v be_v fit_n convenient_a complete_a perfect_a of_o more_o efficacy_n and_o more_o clear_a representation_n than_o the_o other_o under_o one_o kind_n alone_o and_o therefore_o many_o still_o retain_v the_o ancient_a manner_n of_o communicate_v after_o other_o have_v admit_v &_o receive_v the_o new_a 12._o aquinas_n say_v of_o his_o time_n that_o the_o communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n alone_o be_v receive_v in_o many_o church_n not_o in_o all_o 1._o alexander_n of_o hales_n say_v that_o lie_v man_n almost_o every_o where_o communicate_v in_o one_o kind_n 1._o petrus_n de_fw-fr palude_fw-la say_v it_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o some_o church_n to_o give_v the_o communion_n to_o the_o people_n in_o both_o kind_n durandus_fw-la report_v that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o some_o church_n in_o his_o time_n that_o the_o priest_n shall_v consecrate_v such_o a_o quantity_n of_o wine_n that_o after_o he_o have_v drink_v of_o the_o same_o there_o may_v still_o some_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n blood_n remain_v in_o the_o chalice_n into_o which_o more_o wine_n not_o consecrate_v may_v be_v pour_v that_o the_o other_o communicant_o may_v partake_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o then_o they_o begin_v to_o dispute_v the_o question_n whether_o the_o wine_n that_o be_v put_v into_o the_o cup_n by_o contact_n of_o christ_n blood_n become_v consecrate_v &_o sacramental_a or_o not_o but_o whether_o it_o do_v or_o not_o they_o resolve_v that_o all_o by_o this_o mean_n do_v partake_v and_o drink_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v mingle_v with_o every_o part_n of_o the_o wine_n new_o pour_v into_o it_o after_o this_o some_o proceed_v far_a &_o leave_v none_o of_o the_o sacramental_a or_o consecrate_a wine_n in_o the_o cup_n or_o chalice_n but_o pour_v mere_a wine_n into_o it_o that_o the_o communicant_n may_v wash_v their_o mouth_n with_o it_o after_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n teach_v they_o that_o they_o have_v be_v sufficient_o partaker_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o they_o have_v receive_v his_o body_n from_o which_o his_o blood_n can_v be_v separate_v but_o 31._o willielmus_fw-la de_fw-fr lauduno_n say_v that_o he_o that_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n receive_v the_o whole_a verity_n but_o not_o the_o whole_a sacrament_n and_o that_o therefore_o in_o many_o place_n they_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o where_o they_o admit_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n yet_o they_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o communicant_n and_o permit_v some_o to_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n catholica_fw-la linwood_n say_v that_o in_o the_o lesser_a church_n only_o they_o that_o consecrate_v receive_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o consecrate_a wine_n insinuate_v thereby_o that_o in_o the_o great_a it_o be_v otherwise_o and_o that_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o same_o nation_n and_o people_n the_o great_a and_o more_o honourable_a church_n have_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n when_o the_o mean_a have_v it_o but_o in_o one_o yea_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o the_o same_o particular_a church_n some_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n when_o other_o communicate_v but_o in_o one_o for_o utraque_fw-la richardus_fw-la de_fw-la mediâ_fw-la villâ_fw-la and_o petrus_n de_fw-fr tarantasia_n afterward_o name_v innocentius_n the_o 4_o t_o report_n that_o in_o their_o time_n not_o only_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o altar_n but_o the_o more_o principal_a of_o the_o people_n communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n 88_o thomas_n waldensis_n provincial_a of_o the_o carmelites_n here_o in_o england_n say_v of_o his_o time_n we_o permit_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o give_v the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n to_o such_o person_n as_o be_v strong_a in_o faith_n and_o discreet_a as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v use_v to_o give_v the_o communion_n to_o the_o deacon_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o other_o excel_a in_o faith_n or_o of_o high_a place_n and_o dignity_n as_o doctor_n and_o king_n or_o as_o the_o church_n of_o religious_a man_n and_o of_o great_a place_n do_v still_o continue_v to_o give_v the_o sacrament_n to_o their_o brethren_n and_o such_o person_n as_o be_v worthy_a of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n and_o in_o 94._o another_o place_n he_o have_v these_o word_n neither_o do_v we_o deny_v unto_o all_o lay_v man_n general_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n neither_o do_v we_o general_o and_o without_o distinction_n or_o difference_n grant_v and_o yield_v it_o unto_o all_o for_o we_o know_v that_o by_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o great_a prelate_n to_o admit_v certain_a of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o altar_n or_o certain_a other_o illustrious_a person_n among_o the_o people_n that_o be_v faithful_a reverend_a and_o devout_a to_o the_o solemn_a communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n thus_o do_v he_o write_v more_o than_o a_o thousand_o and_o four_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n martin_n who_o be_v elect_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o who_o as_o b._n lindan_n tell_v we_o go_v home_o from_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o minister_v the_o communion_n to_o sundry_a both_o of_o the_o clergy_n and_o laity_n under_o both_o kind_n so_o that_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n continue_v after_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n which_o as_o the_o same_o lindan_n say_v do_v not_o simple_o forbid_v the_o minister_a of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n but_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o people_n that_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v be_v so_o minister_v to_o this_o purpose_n see_v the_o 13_o session_n of_o the_o council_n the_o council_n of_o basil_n permit_v the_o bohemian_n to_o continue_v the_o use_n of_o the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n &_o cassander_n tell_v we_o that_o good_a &_o credible_a author_n do_v testify_v that_o in_o 33._o france_n the_o whole_a communion_n be_v minister_v though_o not_o everywhere_a in_o ordinary_a church_n yet_o in_o chapel_n even_o a_o little_a before_o the_o memory_n of_o our_o father_n as_o also_o it_o be_v minister_v to_o the_o french_a king_n to_o this_o day_n 〈◊〉_d caietan_n say_v of_o his_o time_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o west_n have_v the_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n he_o say_v not_o all_o but_o almost_o all_o for_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o same_o caietan_n the_o cistercian_n monk_n in_o some_o place_n do_v communicate_v under_o both_o kind_n even_o in_o his_o time_n their_o order_n as_o it_o may_v be_v think_v be_v institute_v while_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n continue_v in_o general_a observation_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o any_o monastery_n will_v have_v presume_v to_o renew_v a_o abolish_v custom_n so_o that_o we_o see_v that_o the_o church_n of_o this_o part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v never_o whole_o deprive_v of_o the_o necessary_a and_o comfortable_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n and_o for_o those_o that_o be_v we_o see_v by_o what_o degree_n and_o in_o what_o sort_n not_o without_o complain_v of_o the_o wrong_n do_v unto_o they_o they_o be_v force_v to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o innovation_n by_o a_o prevail_a faction_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o cease_v to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a and_o orthodox_n church_n that_o be_v thus_o wrong_v the_o armenian_a in_o the_o dialogue_n of_o armachanus_fw-la object_v the_o say_n of_o christ_n except_o a_o man_n eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n he_o can_v have_v no_o life_n to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n
blood_n and_o the_o blood_n without_o the_o body_n and_o so_o a_o slay_v and_o a_o crucify_a christ_n if_o that_o natural_a concomitance_n by_o reason_n whereof_o the_o one_o of_o they_o will_v not_o be_v absent_a where_o the_o other_o become_v present_a do_v not_o hinder_v their_o be_v asunder_o thus_o than_o they_o say_v there_o be_v a_o true_a real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n in_o that_o as_o much_o as_o be_v on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o word_n pronounce_v and_o he_o that_o pronounce_v they_o christ_n blood_n be_v again_o pour_v out_o and_o he_o consequent_o slay_v this_o be_v the_o conceit_n of_o gregorius_n de_fw-fr valentia_n and_o in_o this_o sort_n he_o imagine_v christ_n be_v daily_o new_o sacrifice_v on_o the_o altar_n but_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v a_o impious_a thing_n for_o the_o priest_n to_o endeavour_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v to_o slay_v christ_n and_o to_o pour_v out_o his_o blood_n again_o this_o prove_v not_o a_o real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n but_o only_o a_o endeavour_n so_o to_o do_v for_o his_o blood_n be_v not_o pour_v out_o neither_o be_v he_o slay_v indeed_o so_o that_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a law_n if_o the_o priest_n reach_v forth_o his_o hand_n to_o slay_v the_o beast_n that_o be_v bring_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v have_v be_v so_o hinder_v by_o something_o interpose_v itself_o that_o he_o can_v not_o slay_v the_o same_o he_o have_v offer_v no_o sacrifice_n but_o endeavour_v only_o so_o to_o do_v so_o be_v it_o here_o bellarmine_n therefore_o reject_v this_o conceit_n and_o have_v another_o of_o his_o own_o for_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o two_o fold_v be_v the_o one_o natural_a the_o other_o sacramental_a the_o jew_n have_v he_o present_v among_o they_o visible_o in_o his_o natural_a be_v this_o be_v they_o destroy_v and_o so_o kill_v and_o sacrifice_v he_o the_o romish_a priest_n have_v he_o not_o so_o present_a neither_o can_v they_o destroy_v his_o natural_a be_v and_o so_o kill_v he_o but_o they_o have_v he_o present_v in_o a_o sacramental_a presence_n and_o in_o a_o sacramental_a be_v this_o be_v they_o destroy_v for_o consume_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o be_v there_o leave_v without_o substance_n and_o with_o which_o he_o be_v present_a they_o make_v his_o presence_n there_o to_o cease_v and_o so_o cause_v he_o to_o loose_v that_o be_v which_o former_o he_o there_o have_v thus_o do_v they_o suppose_v that_o they_o new_o sacrifice_v christ_n and_o destroy_v he_o in_o that_o be_v wherein_o he_o be_v present_a with_o they_o and_o the_o priest_n eat_v be_v not_o for_o refection_n but_o for_o consumption_n that_o he_o may_v destroy_v christ_n in_o that_o be_v wherein_o he_o be_v present_a as_o the_o fire_n on_o the_o altar_n be_v wont_a to_o consume_v and_o destroy_v the_o body_n of_o those_o beast_n that_o be_v put_v into_o it_o but_o first_o it_o be_v impious_a to_o think_v of_o destroy_v christ_n in_o any_o sort_n for_o though_o it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o sacrifice_v of_o christ_n on_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o destroy_n and_o kill_v of_o he_o be_v employ_v and_o this_o his_o death_n be_v the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o all_o that_o concur_v to_o the_o kill_n of_o he_o as_o the_o jew_n the_o roman_a soldier_n pilate_n and_o judas_n sin_v damnable_o and_o so_o have_v do_v though_o they_o have_v shed_v his_o blood_n with_o a_o intention_n and_o desire_v that_o by_o it_o the_o world_n may_v be_v redeem_v so_o in_o like_a sort_n let_v the_o romish_a priest_n have_v what_o intention_n they_o will_v it_o be_v hellish_a and_o damnable_a once_o to_o think_v of_o the_o destroy_n of_o christ_n in_o any_o sort_n and_o beside_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o so_o to_o do_v yet_o all_o that_o they_o do_v or_o can_v do_v be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v good_a a_o real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n because_o all_o they_o do_v or_o can_v do_v be_v no_o destroy_n of_o his_o be_v but_o only_o of_o his_o be_v somewhere_o that_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o as_o if_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v bring_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n have_v be_v only_o remove_v out_o of_o some_o place_n into_o which_o they_o be_v bring_v or_o only_o cause_v to_o cease_v to_o be_v where_o they_o be_v and_o not_o what_o they_o be_v they_o can_v not_o true_o have_v be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v sacrifice_v no_o more_o can_v it_o be_v true_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v real_o sacrifice_v in_o that_o the_o priest_n consume_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n under_o which_o they_o suppose_v he_o to_o be_v make_v he_o cease_v to_o be_v there_o any_o long_o have_v thus_o in_o their_o err_a imagination_n frame_v to_o themselves_o a_o real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n they_o begin_v to_o dispute_v of_o the_o force_n and_o efficacy_n of_o it_o affirm_v that_o this_o real_a offering_n and_o sacrifice_v of_o christ_n by_o the_o 4._o priest_n be_v propitiatory_a in_o that_o it_o pacifi_v god_n and_o procure_v and_o obtain_v grace_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o repentance_n that_o the_o sinner_n may_v come_v to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o be_v justify_v satisfactory_a in_o that_o it_o apply_v the_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n and_o procure_v remission_n of_o temporal_a punishment_n to_o they_o that_o by_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v already_o free_a from_o the_o guilt_n of_o eternal_a condemnation_n meritorious_a because_o it_o obtain_v that_o grace_n whereby_o we_o may_v merit_v and_o impetratory_n in_o that_o it_o obtain_v for_o we_o and_o procure_v to_o we_o all_o desire_a good_a this_o force_n and_o efficacy_n they_o say_v it_o have_v ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la that_o be_v the_o very_a offering_n and_o sacrifice_v of_o christ_n in_o sort_n before_o express_v of_o itself_o have_v force_n and_o power_n to_o obtain_v and_o procure_v grace_n remission_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o like_a for_o all_o they_o for_o who_o such_o offering_n be_v make_v if_o there_o be_v no_o hindrance_n or_o impediment_n in_o themselves_o and_o that_o god_n have_v tie_v himself_o by_o promise_n to_o confer_v such_o gift_n and_o work_v such_o effect_n so_o often_o as_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o his_o son_n shall_v be_v thus_o offer_v and_o far_o they_o add_v that_o it_o confer_v good_a and_o remove_v evil_a not_o infinite_o but_o in_o a_o stint_a and_o limit_a sort_n nor_o in_o that_o limit_a sort_n equal_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o but_o in_o proportionable_a sort_n as_o the_o intendment_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o apply_v this_o sacrifice_n more_o or_o less_o to_o the_o procure_n of_o more_o or_o less_o and_o that_o therefore_o the_o benefitte_n that_o this_o sacrifice_n procure_v be_v in_o one_o degree_n communicate_v to_o all_o faithful_a one_o live_v and_o dead_a in_o another_o to_o such_o as_o by_o the_o church_n appointment_n be_v special_o name_v as_o the_o pope_n king_n and_o bishop_n or_o the_o like_a in_o another_o to_o they_o that_o procure_v the_o offering_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n in_o another_o to_o they_o that_o be_v present_a and_o stand_v by_o in_o another_o to_o they_o that_o minister_n and_o attend_v in_o another_o to_o the_o priest_n that_o sacrifice_v and_o in_o another_o to_o whosoever_o it_o please_v the_o priest_n to_o impart_v and_o communicate_v the_o benefitte_n and_o effect_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n for_o as_o gregorius_n de_fw-fr valentia_n allege_v out_o of_o ●_o scotus_n it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o the_o priest_n that_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n may_v apply_v to_o who_o he_o will_v not_o only_o that_o which_o by_o worth_n 2●…_n of_o his_o personal_a merit_n in_o the_o religious_a perform_n of_o this_o service_n he_o may_v deserve_v but_o some_o part_n also_o of_o that_o effect_n which_o this_o sacrifice_n have_v ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la and_o that_o god_n have_v commit_v unto_o he_o the_o effect_n which_o it_o have_v in_o this_o kind_n in_o some_o degree_n and_o sort_n to_o be_v dispense_v by_o he_o to_o who_o he_o think_v good_a in_o recompense_n of_o his_o service_n and_o further_o they_o resolve_v that_o those_o effect_n which_o this_o sacrifice_n have_v ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la and_o be_v by_o the_o intendment_n of_o the_o church_n communicate_v in_o different_a sort_n and_o degree_n to_o those_o diverse_a sort_n of_o man_n before_o specify_v be_v equal_o communicate_v to_o each_o of_o those_o sort_n according_a to_o their_o several_a difference_n whether_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v for_o more_o or_o few_o as_o they_o that_o procure_v mass_n to_o be_v say_v for_o they_o whether_o they_o be_v more_o or_o few_o shall_v have_v like_o effect_n wrought_v in_o they_o but_o that_o portion_n of_o this_o
efficacy_n force_n and_o power_n of_o work_v gracious_a effect_n that_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o disposition_n and_o distribution_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v so_o limit_v that_o according_o as_o he_o intend_v good_a to_o more_o or_o few_o he_o procure_v more_o or_o less_o unto_o they_o here_o we_o see_v a_o goodly_a frame_n of_o build_v raise_v but_o it_o have_v a_o ill_a foundation_n for_o it_o be_v most_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o very_a offering_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la and_o of_o itself_o shall_v have_v force_n to_o obtain_v any_o thing_n at_o god_n hand_n or_o to_o procu●…e_v any_o good_a unto_o us._n for_o there_o be_v no_o offering_n that_o can_v have_v any_o acceptation_n unless_o it_o be_v offer_v by_o a_o accept_a offerer_n according_a to_o that_o in_o the_o 4_o of_o gen●…sis_n god_n have_v respect_n to_o abel_n and_o to_o his_o offering_n first_o to_o abel_n and_o then_o to_o his_o offering_n and_o that_o in_o the_o 21_o of_o luke_n where_o christ_n say_v this_o poor_a widow_n have_v cast_v in_o more_o into_o the_o treasury_n than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n because_o she_o cast_v it_o in_o out_o of_o a_o large_a more_o free_a better_a and_o more_o accept_v will_n and_o hereupon_o saint_n gregory_n in_o his_o homily_n on_o that_o of_o matthew_n 4._o jesus_n walk_v etc._n etc._n say_v non_fw-la pensat_fw-la deus_fw-la quantum_fw-la in_o eius_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la deferatur_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la quanto_fw-la that_o be_v god_n do_v not_o so_o much_o weigh_v and_o consider_v how_o much_o or_o how_o good_a that_o be_v which_o be_v present_v to_o he_o in_o sacrifice_n as_o out_o of_o how_o great_a and_o good_a affection_n it_o be_v present_v and_o therefore_o if_o a_o jew_n have_v offer_v christ_n unto_o his_o father_n will_v so_o to_o be_v offer_v or_o not_o will_v this_o oblation_n have_v not_o be_v so_o acceptable_a as_o when_o he_o offer_v himself_o nay_o it_o have_v not_o be_v accept_v at_o all_o according_a to_o that_o in_o 34._o ecclesiasticus_fw-la he_o that_o offer_v sacrifice_n out_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o poor_a be_v as_o he_o that_o slay_v and_o sacrifice_v the_o son_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o father_n and_o bellarmine_n say_v well_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n that_o though_o 4_o the_o thing_n offer_v be_v acceptable_a of_o itself_o yet_o the_o oblation_n be_v not_o acceptable_a unless_o the_o offerer_n be_v accept_v which_o be_v especial_o true_a in_o respect_n of_o god_n who_o all_o thing_n be_v and_o who_o need_v nothing_o so_o that_o in_o this_o suppose_a sacrifice_n the_o worthiness_n and_o acceptation_n of_o the_o offerer_n be_v principal_o to_o be_v consider_v for_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o worth_n of_o the_o thing_n offer_v as_o the_o esteem_v the_o offerer_n have_v of_o it_o and_o his_o good_a affection_n in_o offer_v it_o that_o god_n respect_v who_o therefore_o be_v the_o offerer_n of_o this_o their_o suppose_a sacrifice_n they_o will_v say_v christ_n be_v the_o supreme_a and_o the_o priest_n the_o inferior_a and_o subordinate_a and_o that_o therefore_o whatsoever_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n be_v accept_v for_o the_o principal_a offerer_n sake_n but_o this_o be_v nothing_o for_o though_o christ_n be_v offer_v on_o the_o altar_n as_o they_o imagine_v yet_o he_o do_v not_o offer_v himself_o immediate_o for_o then_o this_o offering_n will_v be_v equivalent_a to_o that_o former_a on_o the_o cross_n which_o yet_o they_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v and_o beside_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v find_v false_a and_o untrue_a heb._n 9_o that_o he_o do_v not_o often_o offer_v himself_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n offer_v himself_o mediate_o by_o the_o priest_n and_o so_o give_v price_n and_o worth_n to_o the_o offering_n for_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n offer_v himself_o mediate_o by_o the_o priest_n either_o it_o be_v because_o he_o appoint_v authorise_v and_o encourage_v the_o priest_n to_o make_v this_o offering_n and_o this_o will_v give_v no_o more_o value_n and_o worth_n to_o the_o offer_v then_o the_o immediate_a offerer_n have_v as_o we_o see_v it_o be_v in_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o priest_n under_o the_o law_n or_o else_o in_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v this_o in_o his_o name_n as_o a_o legate_n present_v a_o thing_n to_o a_o foreign_a prince_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o king_n and_o this_o can_v be_v for_o whatsoever_o a_o legate_n may_v do_v in_o the_o name_n &_o person_n of_o his_o king_n the_o king_n may_v do_v in_o his_o own_o person_n if_o it_o please_v he_o but_o christ_n can_v no_o more_o offer_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o person_n therefore_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v wherefore_o pass_v by_o this_o idle_a fancy_n we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o of●…erer_n be_v the_o priest_n and_o so_o many_o as_o do_v procure_v or_o desire_v the_o do_v of_o the_o same_o and_o that_o therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o a_o sort_n may_v be_v say_v to_o offer_v this_o sacrifice_n for_o though_o it_o be_v offer_v ministerio_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o priest_n yet_o it_o be_v offer_v voto_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la out_o of_o the_o devotion_n &_o desire_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o there_o be_v ever_o some_o find_v that_o be_v acceptable_a unto_o god_n and_o therefore_o the_o offerer_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v ever_o acceptable_a and_o according_a to_o the_o merit_n &_o worthiness_n of_o this_o offerer_n the_o sacrifice_n here_o offer_v find_v acceptation_n so_o then_o these_o man_n imagine_v that_o there_o be_v a_o real_a external_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n which_o they_o daily_o offer_v unto_o god_n that_o it_o work_v great_a effect_n of_o grace_n that_o christ_n be_v offer_v in_o it_o but_o that_o the_o acceptation_n of_o it_o be_v not_o whole_o nor_o principal_o from_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o thing_n offer_v but_o from_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o offerer_n this_o be_v the_o present_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n appear_v for_o the_o best_a &_o principal_a man_n that_o then_o live_v teach_v peremptory_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o new_o offer_v any_o otherwise_o then_o in_o that_o he_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o view_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o otherwise_o sacrifice_v then_o in_o that_o his_o sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n be_v commemorate_a &_o represent_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v two_o say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o enchiridion_n of_o christian_a religion_n publish_v in_o the_o provincial_a council_n of_o colen_n the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n with_o all_o his_o merit_n &_o his_o mystical_a body_n with_o all_o the_o gift_n which_o it_o have_v receive_v of_o god_n in_o that_o therefore_o the_o church_n do_v offer_v the_o true_a body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o god_n the_o father_n it_o be_v mere_o a_o representative_a sacrifice_n &_o all_o that_o be_v do_v be_v but_o the_o commemorate_n &_o represent_v of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v once_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n but_o in_o that_o it_o dedicate_v itself_o which_o be_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n unto_o god_n it_o be_v a_o true_a but_o a_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n that_o be_v a_o eucharistical_a sacrifice_n of_o praise_n thanksgiving_n &_o of_o obedience_n due_a unto_o god_n christ_n therefore_o be_v offer_v &_o sacrifice_v on_o the_o altar_n but_o sacramental_o &_o mystical_o in_o that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v a_o commemoration_n &_o remembrance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v once_o do_v christ_n be_v not_o often_o slay_v which_o once_o to_o think_v be_v abominable_a but_o that_o which_o be_v once_o do_v be_v represent_v that_o we_o may_v not_o forget_v the_o benefit_n bestow_v on_o we_o but_o rather_o be_v so_o stir_v up_o &_o move_v by_o this_o sacrament_n as_o if_o we_o see_v the_o lord_n jesus_n hang_v upon_o the_o cross_n the_o passion_n of_o the_o lord_n say_v cae●…ilianum_fw-la cyprian_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o we_o offer_v to_o god_n that_o be_v that_o we_o offer_v to_o the_o view_n of_o god_n and_o represent_v unto_o he_o 68_o neither_o be_v it_o to_o be_v marvail_v at_o that_o we_o offer_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n to_o revive_v the_o memory_n of_o the_o former_a sacrifice_n and_o to_o represent_v it_o unto_o god_n see_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o may_v oppose_v he_o to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n as_o a_o reconciler_n and_o that_o distrust_v our_o own_o strength_n we_o may_v represent_v to_o the_o father_n this_o most_o potent_a sacrifice_n 22._o cum_fw-la defecerit_fw-la say_v bernard_n virtus_fw-la mea_fw-la non_fw-la conturbor_fw-la
i_o be_o si_fw-mi canon_n ille_fw-la missae_fw-la in_o hunc_fw-la quem_fw-la diximus_fw-la sensum_fw-la intelligatur_fw-la nihil_fw-la habet_fw-la incommodi_fw-la superstitiosa_fw-la tantum_fw-la absit_fw-la opinio_fw-la quia_fw-la quidam_fw-la de_fw-la naturâ_fw-la &_o energiâ_fw-la huius_fw-la sanctissimi_fw-la sacrificii_fw-la male_a edocti_fw-la virtutem_fw-la eius_fw-la ex_fw-la solo_fw-la externo_fw-la opere_fw-la quod_fw-la facit_fw-la sacerdos_n in_o se_fw-la derivari_fw-la putabant_fw-la tametsi_fw-la illi_fw-la nullam_fw-la vivam_fw-la fidem_fw-la adferrent_fw-la nullam_fw-la pietatem_fw-la adhiberent_fw-la nulla_fw-la communione_fw-la vel_fw-la precum_fw-la seu_fw-la orationis_fw-la sacrificio_fw-la assensum_fw-la praeberent_fw-la quales_fw-la erant_fw-la qui_fw-la nullâ_fw-la suae_fw-la nefandae_fw-la impietatis_fw-la &_o execrandorum_fw-la flagitiorum_fw-la habitâ_fw-la ratione_fw-la se_fw-la huic_fw-la sacratissimae_fw-la &_o divinissimae_fw-la actioni_fw-la damnabiliter_fw-la miscuerunt_fw-la missam_fw-la solius_fw-la externi_fw-la operis_fw-la quod_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la facit_fw-la virtute_fw-la prodesse_fw-la put_v ant_n etsi_fw-la ipsi_fw-la nihil_fw-la probae_fw-la mentis_fw-la adferrent_fw-la that_o be_v if_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v understand_v in_o this_o sense_n which_o we_o have_v express_v there_o be_v no_o evil_a in_o it_o so_o that_o man_n have_v no_o superstitious_a conceit_n of_o thing_n for_o there_o be_v some_o who_o be_v ill_o instruct_v touch_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o sacrament_n suppose_v that_o virtue_n may_v be_v derive_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o sole_a extern_a action_n of_o the_o priest_n although_o they_o bring_v no_o lively_a faith_n no_o piety_n nor_o give_v any_o consent_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n by_o any_o communion_n so_o much_o as_o of_o prayer_n of_o which_o sort_n they_o be_v who_o have_v no_o consideration_n of_o their_o own_o horrible_a impiety_n &_o evil_n commit_v by_o they_o persevere_v in_o the_o purpose_n of_o sin_v damnable_o presume_v to_o be_v present_a at_o this_o most_o holy_a action_n and_o put_v themselves_o in_o a_o sort_n into_o it_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o the_o mass_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o extern_a work_n of_o the_o priest_n alone_o will_v do_v they_o good_a though_o they_o bring_v no_o motion_n affection_n or_o desire_n of_o a_o good_a mind_n with_o they_o ●…4_n hosius_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o these_o before_o recite_v when_o the_o priest_n say_v he_o lift_v up_o the_o eucharist_n let_v man_n remember_v that_o sacrifice_n wherein_o christ_n be_v lift_v up_o to_o the_o cross_n offer_v himself_o to_o god_n a_o sacrifice_n for_o us._n let_v they_o think_v how_o bitter_a the_o torment_n be_v that_o he_o sustain_v &_o let_v they_o know_v that_o man_n sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o such_o his_o suffering_n let_v they_o grieve_v as_o it_o be_v fit_v they_o shall_v for_o they_o and_o let_v they_o show_v by_o all_o mean_n that_o they_o hate_v they_o and_o because_o by_o his_o precious_a death_n he_o have_v so_o full_o satisfy_v for_o all_o sin_n that_o there_o be_v none_o that_o be_v not_o abolish_v let_v they_o with_o good_a assurance_n &_o confidence_n go_v unto_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n and_o whereas_o we_o have_v no_o merit_n of_o our_o own_o let_v they_o plead_v that_o of_o christ_n let_v they_o present_v that_o his_o body_n that_o do_v hang_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n to_o god_n the_o father_n and_o let_v they_o humble_o beseech_v he_o to_o turn_v away_o his_o face_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o to_o look_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o his_o son_n christ_n who_o bear_v our_o infirmity_n to_o look_v upon_o his_o face_n for_o his_o merit_n to_o remit_v their_o sin_n and_o to_o grant_v that_o they_o may_v derive_v unto_o themselves_o all_o that_o fruit_n which_o that_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n that_o be_v represent_v on_o the_o altar_n bring_v to_o the_o world_n thus_o he_o say_v the_o people_n be_v teach_v by_o our_o forefather_n and_o this_o he_o say_v be_v enough_o for_o they_o to_o know_v notwithstanding_o he_o show_v that_o michael_n bishop_n of_o ratione_fw-la merspurge_n a_o man_n learned_a godly_a and_o true_o catholic_a publish_v certain_a sermon_n touch_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass●…_n which_o he_o wish_v to_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o all_o man_n in_o these_o sermon_n the_o same_o explication_n be_v make_v of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o often_o mention_v that_o i_o have_v already_o deliver_v and_o with_o he_o agree_v another_o learned_a bishop_n thomas_n watson_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n in_o his_o 12._o sermon_n upon_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n his_o word_n be_v these_o christ_n in_o heaven_n and_o we_o his_o mystical_a body_n on_o earth_n do_v but_o one_o thing_n for_o christ_n be_v a_o priest_n for_o evermore_o after_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n enter_v into_o heaven_n and_o there_o appear_v now_o to_o the_o countenance_n of_o god_n for_o we_o offer_v himself_o for_o we_o to_o pacify_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n against_o we_o and_o represent_v his_o passion_n and_o all_o that_o he_o suffer_v for_o we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n by_o he_o even_o so_o the_o church_n our_o mother_n be_v careful_a for_o we_o her_o child_n that_o ●…7_n have_v offend_v our_o father_n in_o heaven_n use_v continual_o by_o her_o public_a minister_n to_o pray_v &_o to_o offer_v unto_o god_n the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o her_o husband_n christ_n represent_v &_o renew_v his_o passion_n and_o death_n before_o god_n that_o we_o thereby_o may_v be_v renew_v in_o grace_n and_o receive_v life_n perfection_n and_o salvation_n and_o after_o the_o same_o sort_n the_o holy_a angel_n of_o god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o our_o sacrifice_n do_v 〈◊〉_d assist_v the_o priest_n and_o stand_v about_o the_o host_n think_v that_o the_o meet_a time_n to_o show_v their_o charity_n towards_o we_o and_o therefore_o hold_v forth_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n pray_v for_o mankind_n as_o say_v thus_o lord_n we_o pray_v for_o they_o who_o thou_o have_v so_o love_v that_o for_o their_o salvation_n thou_o have_v suffer_v death_n &_o spend_v thy_o life_n upon_o the_o cross_n we_o make_v supplication_n for_o they_o for_o who_o thou_o have_v shed_v this_o thy_o blood_n we_o pray_v for_o they_o for_o who_o thou_o have_v offer_v this_o same_o thy_o very_a body_n in_o that_o hour_n when_o christ_n death_n be_v renew_v in_o mystery_n &_o his_o most_o 3._o fearful_a and_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n be_v represent_v to_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n then_o sit_v the_o king_n on_o his_o mercy-seat_n incline_v to_o give_v and_o forgive_v whatsoever_o be_v demand_v and_o ask_v of_o he_o in_o humble_a manner_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o this_o coena_fw-la body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n the_o tear_n of_o a_o meek_a and_o humble_a man_n never_o beg_v pardon_n in_o vain_a nor_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o contrite_a heart_n be_v never_o put_v back_o but_o have_v his_o lawful_a desire_n grant_v &_o give_v by_o resort_v to_o this_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n we_o evident_o declare_v &_o protest_v before_o god_n &_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o we_o put_v our_o singular_a &_o only_a trust_n of_o grace_n &_o salvation_n in_o christ_n our_o lord_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n &_o his_o passion_n &_o not_o for_o the_o worthiness_n of_o any_o good_a work_n that_o we_o have_v do_v or_o can_v do_v &_o that_o we_o make_v his_o passion_n our_o only_a refuge_n for_o when_o wisdom_n fail_v which_o only_o come_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o 22._o christ_n when_o righteousness_n lack_v which_o only_o be_v get_v by_o the_o mercy_n of_o christ_n when_o virtue_n cease_v which_o only_o be_v receive_v from_o he_o who_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o virtue_n then_o for_o supply_v of_o these_o our_o lack_n &_o need_v our_o refuge_n be_v to_o christ_n passion_n than_o we_o run_v as_o the_o prophet_n say_v to_o the_o cup_n of_o our_o saviour_n 115._o and_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o be_v to_o say_v we_o take_v his_o passion_n &_o offer_v to_o god_n the_o father_n in_o mystery_n the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n that_o by_o this_o 75_o memory_n &_o commemoration_n of_o it_o it_o will_v please_v his_o merciful_a goodness_n to_o innovate_v his_o grace_n in_o we_o &_o to_o replenish_v we_o with_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o son_n passion_n we_o be_v become_v debtor_n to_o almighty_a god_n for_o our_o manifold_a sin_n &_o iniquity_n do_v against_o he_o we_o can_v never_o pay_v this_o debt_n no_o scarce_o one_o farthing_n of_o a_o 1000_o pound_n what_o remedy_n then_o have_v we_o but_o to_o run_v to_o the_o rich_a man_n our_o neighbour_n that_o have_v enough_o to_o pay_v for_o we_o all_o i_o mean_v christ_n our_o lord_n who_o have_v pay_v his_o heart_n blood_n for_o no_o debt_n of_o his_o own_o but_o for_o our_o
debt_n &_o there_o while_o we_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o his_o passion_n we_o acknowledge_v &_o confess_v our_o sin_n which_o be_v without_o number_n &_o grant_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o least_o of_o they_o &_o therefore_o beseech_v our_o merciful_a father_n to_o accept_v in_o full_a payment_n &_o satisfaction_n of_o our_o debt_n his_o passion_n which_o after_o this_o sort_n as_o he_o have_v ordain_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n we_o renew_v &_o represent_v before_o he_o &_o where_o our_o sinful_a life_n have_v altogether_o displease_v he_o we_o offer_v unto_o he_o his_o well-beloved_a son_n with_o who_o we_o be_v sure_o he_o be_v well_o please_v most_o humble_o make_v supplication_n to_o accept_v he_o for_o we_o in_o who_o only_o we_o put_v all_o our_o trust_n account_v he_o all_o our_o righteousness_n &_o the_o author_n of_o our_o salvation_n thus_o do_v the_o church_n daily_a renew_v in_o mystery_n the_o passion_n of_o christ_n &_o do_v represent_v it_o before_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a mass_n for_o the_o attain_n of_o all_o the_o grace_n &_o benefit_n purchase_v by_o the_o same_o passion_n before_o after_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o goodness_n &_o as_o our_o faith_n &_o devotion_n be_v know_v unto_o he_o and_o again_o the_o church_n offer_v christ_n god_n son_n to_o god_n the_o father_n that_o be_v represent_v to_o the_o father_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o by_o his_o omnipotency_n he_o have_v there_o make_v present_a and_o thereby_o renew_v his_o passion_n not_o by_o suffer_v of_o death_n again_o but_o after_o a_o unbloudy_a manner_n not_o for_o this_o end_n that_o we_o shall_v thereby_o deserve_v remission_n of_o sin_n &_o deliverance_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a effect_n of_o christ_n passion_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v by_o faith_n devotion_n &_o this_o representation_n of_o his_o passion_n obtain_v remission_n &_o grace_n already_o deserve_v by_o his_o passion_n to_o be_v now_o apply_v to_o our_o profit_n and_o salvation_n etc._n etc._n not_o that_o we_o can_v apply_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n death_n as_o we_o list_v &_o to_o who_o we_o list_v but_o that_o we_o by_o the_o representation_n of_o his_o passion_n most_o humble_o make_v petition_n &_o prayer_n to_o almighty_a god_n to_o apply_v unto_o we_o the_o remission_n &_o grace_n which_o be_v purchase_v &_o deserve_v by_o christ_n passion_n before_o after_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o goodness_n and_o as_o our_o faith_n and_o devotion_n be_v know_v unto_o he_o the_o thing_n offer_v both_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n on_o the_o cross_n &_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n on_o the_o altar_n be_v all_o one_o in_o substance_n be_v the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n our_o high_a priest_n and_o the_o price_n and_o ransom_n of_o our_o redemption_n but_o the_o manner_n and_o effect_n of_o these_o two_o offering_n be_v diverse_a the_o one_o be_v by_o the_o shed_n of_o christ_n blood_n extend_v to_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o offerer_n for_o the_o redemption_n of_o all_o mankind_n the_o other_o be_v without_o shed_v of_o his_o blood_n only_o represent_v his_o death_n whereby_o the_o faithful_a and_o devout_a people_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n hitherto_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o 75_o author_n of_o the_o enchiridion_n of_o christian_a religion_n have_v these_o word_n diligenter_fw-la ergo_fw-la haec_fw-la omne_fw-la nobis_fw-la intuentibus_fw-la nihil_fw-la vel_fw-la absurdi_fw-la vel_fw-la scrupulosi_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la missae_fw-la contextu_fw-la occurret_fw-la sedomnia_fw-la praesertim_fw-la quae_fw-la canon_n complectitur_fw-la pietatis_fw-la plenissima_fw-la ac_fw-la plané_fw-fr reverenda_fw-la ut_fw-la sunt_fw-la videbuntur_fw-la aut_fw-la enim_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la respicit_fw-la ad_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la christi_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la in_o cruse_n oblata_fw-la &_o vi_fw-la omnipotentis_fw-la verbi_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la praesentia_fw-la &_o non_fw-la veretur_fw-la haec_fw-la appellare_fw-la hostiam_fw-la puram_fw-la hostiam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la hostiam_fw-la immaculatam_fw-la panem_fw-la sanctum_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la aeternae_fw-la &_o calicem_fw-la salutis_fw-la perpetuae_fw-la aut_fw-la ad_fw-la oblationem_fw-la repraesentativam_fw-la &_o commemorativam_fw-la passionis_fw-la seu_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la very_fw-la quae_fw-la fide_fw-la misericordiam_fw-la per_fw-la christum_fw-la apprehendente_fw-la &_o redemptionem_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la deo_fw-la patri_fw-la opponente_fw-la peragitur_fw-la &_o non_fw-la dubitat_fw-la hoc_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la laudis_fw-la offer_n pro_fw-la se_fw-la suisque_fw-la omnibus_fw-la pro_fw-la spe_fw-la salutis_fw-la &_o incolumitatis_fw-la suae_fw-la nimirum_fw-la spem_fw-la salutis_fw-la &_o incolumitatis_fw-la ac_fw-la redemptionem_fw-la animarum_fw-la debitalaude_fw-la ac_fw-la gratiarum_fw-la actione_n deo_fw-la accepta_fw-la referens_fw-la petitque_fw-la ut_fw-la hanc_fw-la oblationem_fw-la seruitutis_fw-la suae_fw-la deus_fw-la placatus_fw-la accipiat_fw-la diesque_fw-la nostros_fw-la in_o sua_fw-la pace_fw-la disponat_fw-la atque_fw-la ab_fw-la aeterna_fw-la damnatione_fw-la nos_fw-la eripi_fw-la et_fw-la in_o electorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la grege_fw-la iubeat_fw-la numerari_fw-la non_fw-la quidem_fw-la ex_fw-la meritis_fw-la nostris_fw-la aut_fw-la ex_fw-la dignitate_fw-la nostrae_fw-la seruitutis_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la christum_fw-la dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la that_o be_v if_o we_o right_o look_v into_o these_o thing_n nothing_o will_v occur_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o whole_a context_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o may_v just_o seem_v absurd_a or_o cause_v any_o scruple_n but_o all_o thing_n there_o find_v especial_o such_o as_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o canon_n will_v appear_v unto_o we_o as_o they_o be_v indeed_o full_a of_o piety_n and_o much_o to_o be_v reverence_v for_o either_o the_o church_n have_v respect_n to_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n offer_v for_o she_o on_o the_o cross_n and_o by_o force_n of_o his_o almighty_a word_n present_a on_o the_o altar_n and_o so_o fear_v not_o to_o call_v these_o a_o pure_a host_n a_o holy_a host_n a_o immaculate_a host_n the_o holy_a bread_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n or_o else_o she_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o the_o representative_a and_o commemorative_a oblation_n of_o the_o passion_n or_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n which_o consist_v in_o faith_n apprehend_v mercy_n by_o christ_n and_o oppose_v unto_o god_n the_o redemption_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o so_o she_o doubt_v not_o to_o offer_v this_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n for_o herself_o and_o all_o her_o member_n for_o the_o hope_n of_o her_o salvation_n and_o safety_n that_o be_v with_o all_o due_a praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n she_o acknowledge_v that_o she_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n the_o hope_n of_o salvation_n safety_n and_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o her_o son_n and_o daughter_n and_o desire_v that_o god_n will_v take_v in_o good_a part_n this_o oblation_n of_o her_o service_n and_o bind_a duty_n that_o he_o will_v dispose_v our_o day_n in_o peace_n that_o he_o will_v deliver_v we_o from_o eternal_a condemnation_n and_o that_o he_o will_v make_v we_o to_o be_v number_v with_o his_o elect_a not_o for_o our_o merit_n or_o the_o worthiness_n of_o this_o service_n but_o through_o christ_n our_o lord_n with_o these_o 75_o georgius_n wicelius_n a_o man_n much_o honour_v by_o the_o emperor_n ferdinand_n and_o maximilian_n full_o agree_v define_v the_o mass_n to_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n rememorative_n and_o of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v the_o mass_n be_v a_o commemoration_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n celebrate_v in_o the_o public_a 75_o assembly_n of_o christian_n where_o many_o give_v think_v for_o the_o price_n of_o redemption_n with_o these_o agree_v the_o interim_n publish_v by_o charles_n the_o five_o in_o the_o the_o assembly_n 75_o of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n at_o augusta_n march_v 15_o to_o 1548_o and_o there_o accept_v by_o the_o same_o state_n but_o some_o man_n happy_o will_v say_v here_o be_v many_o authority_n allege_v to_o prove_v that_o sundry_a worthy_a divine_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o luther_n time_n deny_v the_o new_a real_a offering_n or_o sacrifice_v of_o christ_n and_o make_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n to_o be_v only_o representative_a and_o commemorative_n but_o before_o his_o time_n there_o be_v none_o find_v so_o to_o teach_v wherefore_o i_o will_v show_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v be_v clear_a for_o we_o to_o uch_v this_o point_n before_o his_o time_n and_o against_o the_o tridentine_a doctrine_n now_o prevail_v bonaventura_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o mass_n have_v these_o word_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v elevate_v and_o lift_v up_o in_o the_o mass_n for_o diverse_a cause_n but_o the_o first_o and_o principal_n be_v that_o we_o may_v obtain_v and_o regain_v the_o favour_n of_o god_n the_o father_n
which_o we_o have_v lose_v by_o our_o sin_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o offend_v god_n and_o provoke_v he_o to_o be_v diplease_v but_o sin_n only_o as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v they_o provoke_v and_o displease_v god_n with_o their_o invention_n the_o priest_n therefore_o lift_v up_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n on_o the_o altar_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v thus_o say_v o_o heavenly_a father_n we_o have_v sin_v and_o provoke_v thou_o to_o anger_n but_o now_o look_v on_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n thy_o son_n who_o we_o present_v unto_o thou_o to_o move_v thou_o to_o turn_v from_o thy_o wrath_n and_o displeasure_n to_o mercy_n and_o grace_n turn_v not_o away_o thy_o face_n therefore_o from_o this_o thy_o holy_a child_n jesus_n from_o this_o thy_o son_n but_o remember_v that_o thou_o have_v say_v of_o this_o same_o thy_o son_n this_o be_v my_o well-beloved_a son_n in_o who_o i_o be_o well_o please_v correct_v therefore_o merciful_o in_o we_o whatsoever_o thou_o find_v in_o we_o fit_a to_o be_v correct_v and_o turn_v we_o unto_o thou_o and_o turn_v thy_o wrath_n from_o us._n the_o question_n be_v propose_v say_v petrobusianos_fw-la petrus_n cluniacensis_fw-la why_o this_o sacrifice_n be_v so_o often_o repeat_v see_v christ_n once_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n be_v sufficient_a to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n especial_o see_v here_o and_o there_o not_o a_o diverse_a but_o the_o same_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v the_o same_o christ_n be_v offer_v for_o if_o that_o on_o the_o cross_n suffice_v this_o seem_v to_o be_v supefluous_a but_o it_o be_v not_o superfluous_a etc._n etc._n for_o after_o he_o have_v say_v do_v this_o he_o add_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o this_o then_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o sacrament_n even_o the_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n know_v what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o what_o he_o will_v do_v for_o man_n he_o know_v how_o great_a and_o singular_a that_o work_n be_v which_o he_o have_v do_v in_o put_v on_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n he_o know_v how_o wonderful_a that_o work_n will_v be_v that_o he_o be_v to_o do_v when_o he_o shall_v die_v for_o man_n he_o know_v that_o by_o this_o work_n he_o shall_v save_v man_n but_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v without_o the_o love_n of_o this_o work_n he_o know_v that_o this_o work_n of_o his_o become_a man_n and_o die_v for_o man_n as_o it_o be_v renown_v above_o all_o his_o work_n so_o it_o be_v especial_o to_o be_v recommend_v unto_o man_n for_o who_o it_o be_v do_v it_o be_v special_o to_o be_v commend_v to_o they_o see_v his_o flesh_n be_v torment_v for_o they_o his_o soul_n grieve_v and_o death_n seize_v on_o he_o that_o they_o may_v live_v this_o be_v solemn_o to_o be_v commend_v unto_o they_o that_o christ_n may_v be_v belove_v that_o be_v belove_v he_o may_v be_v possess_v that_o be_v once_o have_v he_o may_v never_o be_v lose_v but_o this_o love_n of_o he_o can_v not_o have_v be_v retain_v by_o man_n if_o they_o should-have_a forget_v he_o neither_o can_v they_o have_v retain_v the_o memory_n of_o he_o unless_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o he_o by_o some_o fit_a outward_a sign_n for_o this_o cause_n be_v this_o sign_n propose_v and_o appoint_v by_o christ_n which_o yet_o be_v so_o a_o sign_n that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o it_o signify_v and_o herein_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n which_o be_v not_o that_o they_o signify_v sed_fw-la istud_fw-la nostri_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la signum_fw-la non_fw-la aliud_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la signat_fw-la ita_fw-la vero_fw-la est_fw-la ci_fw-fr idem_fw-la quod_fw-la signat_fw-la ut_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la corpus_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la veritatem_fw-la carnis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la pertinet_fw-la sit_fw-la idem_fw-la quod_fw-la signat_fw-la non_fw-la quoad_fw-la mortem_fw-la &_o passionem_fw-la neque_fw-la enim_fw-la ibi_fw-la christus_fw-la ut_fw-la olim_fw-la dolorem_fw-la &_o mortem_fw-la patitur_fw-la cum_fw-la tamen_fw-la immolari_fw-la dicatur_fw-la cum_fw-la videlicet_fw-la inviolabiter_n in_fw-la altari_fw-la frangitur_fw-la dividitur_fw-la comeditur_fw-la cum_fw-la ijs_fw-la &_o quibusdam_fw-la alijs_fw-la signis_fw-la in_o quantum_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la mors_fw-la domini_fw-la maximè_fw-la repraesentatur_fw-la unde_fw-la sicut_fw-la dixi_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la veritatem_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la christi_fw-la pertinet_fw-la est_fw-la idem_fw-la quod_fw-la signat_fw-la non_fw-la quoad_fw-la mortem_fw-la &_o passionem_fw-la quam_fw-la tamen_fw-la maximè_fw-la signat_fw-la that_o be_v this_o sign_n of_o our_o sacrifice_n be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o it_o signify_v but_o we_o must_v so_o understand_v it_o to_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o it_o signify_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o it_o signify_v but_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o passion_n &_o death_n though_o it_o very_o lively_o express_v &_o signify_v that_o also_o for_o christ_n do_v not_o there_o suffer_v grief_n or_o death_n as_o once_o he_o do_v though_o he_o be_v say_v there_o to_o be_v offer_v &_o immolate_a when_o he_o be_v inviolable_o break_v upon_o the_o altar_n distribute_v &_o eat_v &_o when_o by_o these_o &_o the_o like_a sign_n christ_n death_n be_v represent_v asmuch_o as_n possible_o it_o may_v be_v so_o that_o as_o i_o say_v if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n this_o sign_n be_v the_o thing_n it_o signify_v but_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o death_n and_o suffering_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o so_o though_o it_o do_v very_o clear_o &_o express_o represent_v &_o signify_v that_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n thus_o we_o see_v he_o make_v the_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v mere_o representative_a 16._o algerus_n excellent_o express_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o these_o word_n notandum_fw-la quia_fw-la quotidianum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la idem_fw-la ipsum_fw-la dicit_fw-la cum_fw-la eo_fw-la quo_fw-la christus_fw-la semel_fw-la oblatus_fw-la est_fw-la in_o cruse_n quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la eandem_fw-la veram_fw-la hic_fw-la &_o ibi_fw-la corporis_fw-la substantiam_fw-la quod_fw-la verò_fw-la nostrum_fw-la quotidianum_fw-la illius_fw-la semel_fw-la oblati_fw-la dicit_fw-la esse_fw-la exemplum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la figuram_fw-la vel_fw-la formam_fw-la non_fw-la dicit_fw-la ut_fw-la hic_fw-la vel_fw-la ibi_fw-la alium_fw-la christum_fw-la constituat_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la eundem_fw-la in_o cruse_n semel_fw-la in_fw-la altari_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la alio_fw-la modo_fw-la immolari_fw-la &_o offerri_fw-la ostendat_fw-la ibi_fw-la in_o veritate_fw-la passionis_fw-la quâ_fw-la pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la occisus_fw-la est_fw-la hic_fw-la in_o figurâ_fw-la &_o imitatione_n passionis_fw-la ipsius_fw-la quâ_fw-la christus_fw-la non_fw-la iterum_fw-la verè_fw-la patitur_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsius_fw-la verè_fw-la memoria_fw-la passionis_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la nobis_fw-la iteratur_fw-la quod_fw-la &_o ipse_fw-la ambrose_n notans_fw-la subiicit_fw-la quod_fw-la nos_fw-la facimus_fw-la in_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la fit_a eius_fw-la quod_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la facite_fw-la inquit_fw-la in_fw-la meam_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la non_fw-la aliud_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsum_fw-la semper_fw-la offerimus_fw-la magis_fw-la autem_fw-la sacrificii_fw-la recordationem_fw-la operamur_fw-la non_fw-la ergo_fw-la est_fw-la in_o ipsius_fw-la christi_fw-la veritate_fw-la diversitas_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o ipsius_fw-la immolationis_fw-la actione_n quae_fw-la dum_fw-la veram_fw-la christi_fw-la passionem_fw-la &_o mortem_fw-la quâdam_fw-la suâ_fw-la similitudine_fw-la figurando_fw-la repraesentat_fw-la nos_fw-la ad_fw-la imitationem_fw-la ipsius_fw-la passionis_fw-la invitat_fw-la &_o accendit_fw-la contra_fw-la hostem_fw-la nos_fw-la roborat_fw-la &_o munit_fw-la &_o à_fw-la vitiis_fw-la purgans_fw-la &_o virtutibus_fw-la condecorans_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la aeternae_fw-la idoneos_fw-la &_o dignos_fw-la exhibet_fw-la that_o be_v it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o our_o daily_a sacrifice_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o that_o sacrifice_n whereby_o christ_n be_v once_o offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n in_o that_o the_o same_o true_a substance_n be_v offer_v here_o that_o be_v offer_v there_o whereas_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o we_o daily_a offer_n be_v a_o similitude_n figure_n or_o representation_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o christ_n once_o offer_v he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v conceive_v to_o imagine_v that_o there_o be_v one_o christ_n essential_o here_o &_o another_o there_o but_o his_o meaning_n be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o same_o christ_n once_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n be_v daily_o offer_v in_o another_o sort_n on_o the_o altar_n there_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o passion_n be_v slay_v for_o we_o here_o in_o figure_n and_o imitation_n of_o his_o passion_n not_o suffer_v again_o indeed_o but_o have_v the_o memory_n of_o his_o passion_n which_o once_o he_o endure_v daily_a renew_v which_o thing_n ambrose_n himself_o also_o observe_v have_v these_o word_n that_o which_o we_o do_v be_v do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o that_o which_o
be_v then_o do_v for_o he_o say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o we_o do_v not_o therefore_o offer_v another_o sacrifice_n but_o we_o always_o offer_v the_o same_o or_o rather_o that_o we_o do_v be_v a_o remembrance_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v once_o offer_v there_o be_v therefore_o no_o diversity_n in_o the_o truth_n and_o be_v of_o that_o christ_n that_o offer_v himself_o and_o that_o we_o offer_v but_o in_o the_o action_n of_o offering_n for_o while_o that_o which_o we_o do_v represent_v the_o true_a passion_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o a_o certain_a similitude_n it_o have_v of_o the_o same_o set_v it_o lively_a before_o our_o eye_n it_o invit_v and_o inflame_v we_o to_o the_o imitation_n of_o his_o passion_n it_o strengthen_v &_o confirm_v we_o against_o the_o enemy_n it_o purge_v we_o from_o sin_n beautify_v we_o with_o virtue_n and_o make_v we_o meet_v &_o worthy_a to_o enter_v into_o eternal_a life_n and_o afterward_o he_o have_v these_o word_n semel_fw-la passus_fw-la in_o cruse_n qui_fw-la non_fw-la manifestè_fw-la sed_fw-la invisibilitèr_fw-la est_fw-la in_o sacramento_fw-la quotidie_fw-la non_fw-la passus_fw-la sed_fw-la quasi_fw-la pa●…_n repraesentatus_fw-la hanc_fw-la immolationem_fw-la non_fw-la vero_fw-la sed_fw-la imaginario_fw-la actu_fw-la passionis_fw-la &_o mortis_fw-la fieri_fw-la &_o tamen_fw-la veram_fw-la salutem_fw-la operari_fw-la testatur_fw-la gregorius_n dialog_n 4._o c._n 58._o that_o be_v christ_n suffer_v once_o on_o the_o cross_n who_o not_o visible_o but_o invisible_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n neither_o do_v he_o daily_o suffer_v but_o his_o suffering_n be_v daily_o represent_v this_o immolation_n or_o offering_n gregory_n say_v consist_v not_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o passion_n or_o death_n but_o in_o a_o mere_a representation_n of_o the_o same_o and_o that_o yet_o it_o work_v true_a salvation_n and_o after_o he_o add_v licet_fw-la non_fw-la verâ_fw-la sed_fw-la imaginariâ_fw-la passione_n in_fw-la seipsa_fw-la immoletur_fw-la verâ_fw-la tamen_fw-la &_o non_fw-la imaginariâ_fw-la passione_n in_fw-la membris_fw-la suis_fw-la immolatur_fw-la quando_fw-la nos_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o memoriam_fw-la passionis_fw-la suae_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la tantae_fw-la pietatis_fw-la suae_fw-la agimus_fw-la sacrificando_fw-la ipsum_fw-la flendo_fw-la &_o cor_fw-la nostrum_fw-la verâ_fw-la compunctione_n atterendo_fw-la mortem_fw-la tam_fw-la pij_fw-la &_o dilecti_fw-la domini_fw-la &_o patris_fw-la annunciamus_fw-la that_o be_v though_o christ_n be_v not_o offer_v by_o any_o real_a passion_n in_o himself_o but_o in_o a_o mere_a representation_n of_o his_o passion_n yet_o he_o be_v offer_v by_o a_o true_a and_o more_o than_o imaginary_a passion_n in_o his_o member_n while_o we_o who_o in_o memory_n of_o his_o passion_n celebrate_v this_o sacrament_n of_o his_o so_o great_a goodness_n &_o love_a kindness_n towards_o we_o &_o offer_v this_o sacrifice_n by_o weep_v &_o break_v our_o heart_n with_o true_a compunction_n show_v forth_o the_o death_n of_o our_o so_o gracious_a and_o dear_o belove_a lord_n and_o father_n paschasius_fw-la make_v the_o same_o construction_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o 12._o peter_n lombard_n propose_v the_o question_n whether_o that_o the_o priest_n do_v may_v proper_o be_v name_v a_o sacrifice_n or_o immolation_n answer_v that_o christ_n be_v only_o once_o true_o &_o proper_o offer_v in_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o proper_o immolate_a or_o sacrifice_v but_o in_o sacrament_n &_o representation_n only_o bellarmine_n shift_n to_o avoid_v this_o testimony_n be_v very_o silly_a for_o he_o say_v that_o peter_n lombard_n do_v not_o propose_v the_o question_n whether_o and_o how_o christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v but_o how_o he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v so_o sacrifice_v as_o to_o be_v slay_v and_o that_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o say_v true_o that_o christ_n be_v only_o once_o proper_o sacrifice_v for_o that_o he_o can_v be_v say_v any_o more_o to_o be_v kill_v or_o slay_v but_o in_o mystery_n and_o signification_n or_o representation_n only_o whereas_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a that_o he_o propose_v the_o question_n simple_o and_o in_o general_a whether_o he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v or_o not_o and_o see_v the_o sacrifice_a of_o a_o live_a thing_n do_v import_v the_o kill_n and_o destroy_v of_o it_o and_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o christ_n the_o kill_a of_o christ_n he_o 12._o pronounce_v that_o as_o christ_n can_v die_v no_o more_o so_o he_o can_v no_o more_o be_v proper_o sacrifice_v and_o that_o therefore_o when_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v or_o offer_v in_o the_o eucharist_n we_o must_v understand_v that_o he_o be_v offer_v only_o in_o representation_n and_o not_o real_o that_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n it_o appear_v by_o that_o which_o he_o have_v write_v upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o 10._o hebrew_n where_o he_o do_v not_o propose_v the_o question_n whether_o christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v so_o offer_v often_o as_o to_o die_v often_o but_o how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o church_n daily_o offer_v sacrifice_n see_v as_o the_o apostle_n say_v where_o there_o be_v one_o sacrifice_n have_v force_n to_o take_v away_o sin_v once_o offer_v there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o any_o more_o sacrifice_n shall_v be_v offer_v and_o answer_v hereunto_o that_o the_o thing_n now_o offer_v be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o cross_n that_o the_o offering_n of_o it_o now_o be_v commemorative_n &_o that_o that_o which_o we_o do_v be_v but_o recordatio_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la the_o call_n to_o mind_n of_o christ_n sacrifice_n once_o offer_v that_o it_o may_v be_v apply_v unto_o we_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n so_o absolute_o exclude_v all_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n proper_o so_o call_v of_o what_o kind_n soever_o it_o be_v and_o 10._o thomas_n aquinas_n on_o the_o same_o place_n propose_v the_o objection_n of_o the_o repetition_n and_o daily_a reiteration_n of_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n which_o seem_v to_o import_v that_o that_o of_o christ_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o take_v away_o sin_n answer_v that_o we_o offer_v not_o any_o other_o but_o the_o very_a same_o sacrifice_n that_o christ_n do_v that_o be_v his_o body_n &_o blood_n &_o that_o it_o be_v no_o new_a or_o different_a oblation_n proper_o so_o name_v but_o a_o commemoration_n only_o of_o that_o sacrifice_n which_o christ_n once_o offer_v 12_o henricus_fw-la gorrichem_n write_v upon_o the_o sentence_n say_v that_o in_o the_o eucharist_n there_o be_v the_o offering_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n not_o real_o or_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o but_o in_o similitude_n for_o that_o which_o be_v there_o daily_o do_v be_v a_o sign_n bring_v to_o our_o remembrance_n and_o figure_v or_o represent_v that_o oblation_n that_o be_v once_o make_v with_o who_o 10._o lyra_n agree_v his_o word_n be_v si_fw-mi dicas_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la altaris_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la offertur_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la dicendum_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ibi_fw-la sacrificii_fw-la iteratio_fw-la sed_fw-la unius_fw-la sacrificii_fw-la in_o cruse_n oblati_fw-la quotidiana_fw-la commemoratio_fw-la that_o be_v if_o thou_o say_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v daily_o offer_v in_o the_o church_n it_o must_v be_v answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o reiteration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n but_o a_o daily_a commemoration_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v once_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n this_o he_o say_v in_o answer_n to_o that_o objection_n that_o see_v now_o as_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n there_o be_v often_o offer_v for_o sin_n it_o seem_v no_o sufficient_a sacrifice_n have_v be_v offer_v which_o objection_n can_v not_o be_v clear_v by_o his_o answer_n unless_o he_o deny_v the_o often_o offer_v of_o any_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n whether_o bloody_a or_o unbloudy_a wherefore_o that_o which_o 〈◊〉_d bellarmine_n have_v that_o aquinas_n &_o the_o other_o schoolman_n for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v no_o otherwise_o say_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o immolation_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o that_o it_o be_v a_o representation_n of_o christ_n immolation_n on_o the_o cross_n or_o because_o it_o have_v like_o effect_n with_o that_o true_a &_o real_a sacrifice_v of_o christ_n that_o employ_v his_o death_n be_v most_o true_a his_o evasion_n be_v find_v too_o silly_a &_o it_o be_v make_v clear_a &_o evident_a that_o the_o best_a &_o worthy_a among_o the_o guide_n of_o god_n church_n before_o luther_n time_n teach_v as_o we_o do_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v only_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n &_o thanksgiving_n and_o a_o mere_a representation_n and_o commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n once_o offer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o consequent_o be_v all_o put_v under_o the_o curse_n and_o anathematise_v by_o the_o 3._o tridentine_a council_n so_o that_o the_o face_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o the_o same_o before_z and_o at_o luther_n
contrary_a side_n there_o be_v so_o many_o example_n propose_v that_o it_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v do_v with_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n and_o optatus_n hierome_n agree_v who_o upon_o the_o 44._o of_o ezekiel_n say_v in_o express_a word_n that_o priest_n must_v neither_o nourish_v their_o hair_n nor_o be_v shave_v but_o so_o poll_v that_o their_o skin_n may_v still_o remain_v hide_v and_o cover_v and_o 40._o bellarmine_n himself_o confess_v that_o dionysius_n epiphanius_n hierome_n athanafius_n palladius_n augustine_n isidore_n bede_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n &_o toledo_n do_v speak_v of_o tonsure_v only_o and_o never_o mention_v rasure_n and_o that_o the_o epistle_n of_o anicetus_n the_o pope_n allege_v for_o rasure_n be_v not_o indubitate_a what_o then_o will_v the_o cardinal_n bring_v for_o defence_n of_o the_o contrary_a custom_n now_o prevayl_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o what_o will_v he_o answer_v to_o these_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a we_o reprehend_v not_o say_v he_o the_o custom_n of_o those_o time_n neither_o do_v they_o of_o those_o time_n condemn_v our_o observation_n for_o howsoever_o tonsure_v and_o not_o rasure_n be_v ancient_o use_v yet_o be_v not_o they_o of_o the_o clergy_n forbid_v to_o use_v rasure_n or_o to_o shave_v their_o head_n a_o strange_a answer_n of_o so_o great_a a_o rabbi_n and_o contrary_a to_o that_o he_o know_v to_o be_v undoubted_o true_a for_o optatus_n direct_o condemn_v rasure_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v and_o hierome_n write_v upon_o the_o 44_o of_o ezekiel_n have_v these_o word_n quod_fw-la autem_fw-la sequitur_fw-la caput_fw-la autem_fw-la suum_fw-la non_fw-la radent_fw-la neque_fw-la comam_fw-la nutrient_a sed_fw-la tondentes_fw-la attondebunt_fw-la capita_fw-la sua_fw-la perspicuè_fw-fr demonstratur_fw-la nec_fw-la rasis_fw-la capitibus_fw-la sicut_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la cultoresque_fw-la isidis_n atque_fw-la serapis_n nos_fw-la esse_fw-la debere_fw-la nec_fw-la rursum_fw-la comam_fw-la dimittere_fw-la quod_fw-la propriè_fw-la luxuriosorum_fw-la est_fw-la barbarorumque_fw-la &_o militantium_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o be_v that_o which_o follow_v they_o shall_v not_o shave_v their_o head_n nor_o let_v their_o hair_n grow_v long_o but_o poll_n they_o shall_v polle_v their_o head_n do_v clear_o demonstrate_v that_o we_o shall_v neither_o shave_v our_o head_n like_o the_o priest_n and_o worshipper_n of_o isis_n and_o serapis_n nor_o on_o the_o other_o side_n let_v our_o hair_n grow_v long_o as_o wanton_n barbarous_a man_n and_o soldier_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v that_o that_o which_o be_v fit_v honest_a and_o seemly_a may_v appear_v in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o priest_n the_o septnagint_n read_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n somewhat_o otherwise_o in_o this_o sort_n they_o shall_v not_o shave_v their_o head_n nor_o cut_v their_o hair_n too_o near_o sed_fw-la operientes_fw-la operient_fw-la capitasua_fw-la that_o be_v but_o hide_v they_o shall_v hide_v their_o head_n whereby_o we_o learn_v that_o we_o must_v neither_o make_v ourselves_o bald_a by_o shave_v nor_o cut_v the_o hair_n of_o our_o head_n so_o near_o as_o if_o we_o be_v shave_v but_o let_v our_o hair_n grow_v so_o that_o the_o skin_n may_v be_v hide_v &_o cover_v these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o hierome_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o absurd_a and_o ridiculous_a ceremony_n of_o the_o romanist_n in_o shave_v the_o head_n of_o those_o of_o their_o clergy_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o father_n and_o that_o bellarmine_n speak_v against_o his_o own_o conscience_n when_o he_o say_v the_o contrary_a wherefore_o cease_v any_o long_a to_o insist_v upon_o the_o refutation_n of_o the_o absurdity_n of_o so_o ridiculous_a a_o ceromonie_n and_o leave_v those_o inferior_a order_n and_o degree_n of_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n wherein_o man_n in_o ancient_a time_n be_v train_v up_o under_o the_o rule_n of_o strict_a and_o severe_a government_n &_o discipline_n and_o fit_v for_o high_a and_o great_a employment_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o deacon_n the_o office_n of_o bishop_n &_o presbyter_n be_v from_o christ_n own_o immediate_a institution_n but_o the_o institution_n of_o deacon_n be_v from_o the_o apostle_n as_o 3._o cyprian_n deliver_v these_o the_o bishop_n alone_o may_v ordain_v neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o other_o impose_v their_o hand_n with_o he_o as_o in_o the_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n see_v they_o be_v consecrate_v only_o to_o be_v assistant_n to_o the_o bishop_n &_o presbyter_n &_o not_o admit_v into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o same_o power_n and_o order_n with_o they_o the_o deacon_n according_a to_o the_o intendment_n of_o their_o first_o institution_n be_v to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o thereupon_o chrysostome_n and_o after_o he_o the_o father_n of_o the_o 16._o six_o general_a council_n do_v think_v they_o be_v not_o the_o same_o we_o now_o have_v we_o be_v busy_v in_o other_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o be_o of_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v the_o same_o and_o that_o the_o end_n of_o their_o first_o institution_n be_v principal_o to_o ease_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o care_n of_o provide_v for_o the_o poor_a and_o to_o take_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o church-treasure_n when_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n increase_a be_v commit_v to_o certain_a steward_n and_o the_o poor_a otherwise_o provide_v for_o they_o be_v more_o special_o use_v for_o the_o assist_v of_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n service_n and_o worship_n whereupon_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o some_o case_n they_o may_v baptize_v reconcile_v penitent_n preach_v and_o do_v sundry_a other_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n that_o in_o some_o case_n they_o may_v baptize_v u._fw-mi tertullian_n witness_v that_o they_o may_v reconcile_v penitent_n we_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o baptimo_fw-la saint_n 17_o cyprian_n that_o they_o may_v preach_v we_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n z_o gregory_n and_o that_o they_o assist_v the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o minister_a the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o 88_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o minister_v the_o cup_n it_o appear_v by_o lapsis_fw-la cyprian_a and_o hereupon_o hierome_n amplifi_v the_o dignity_n of_o they_o exceed_o show_v that_o for_o avoid_v presumption_n the_o presbyter_n may_v not_o take_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o the_o holy_a table_n unless_o it_o be_v deliver_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o deacon_n these_o be_v they_o say_v he_o of_o who_o we_o read_v in_o the_o revelation_n ecclesiae_fw-la septem_fw-la angeli_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la hi_o sunt_fw-la septem_fw-la candelabra_fw-la aurea_fw-la hi_o sunt_fw-la voces_fw-la tonitruorum_fw-la virtutum_fw-la operatione_n praeclari_fw-la humilitate_fw-la praediti_fw-la quieti_fw-la euangelizantes_fw-la pacem_fw-la annunciante_n bona_fw-la dissentiones_fw-la &_o rixas_fw-la &_o scandala_fw-la resecare_fw-la docentes_fw-la soli_fw-la deo_fw-la colloquentes_fw-la in_o templo_fw-la nihil_fw-la penitus_fw-la de_fw-la mundo_fw-la cogitantes_fw-la dicentes_fw-la patri_fw-la &_o matri_fw-la non_fw-la novi_fw-la vos_fw-la filios_fw-la suos_fw-la non_fw-la agnoscentes_fw-la sine_fw-la his_o sacerdos_n nomen_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la ortum_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la officium_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la that_o be_v these_o be_v the_o seven_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n these_o be_v the_o seven_o golden_a candlestick_n these_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o thunder_n these_o be_v renown_v for_o the_o operation_n of_o virtue_n humble_a quiet_a preach_v peace_n publish_v good_a thing_n teach_v how_o to_o cut_v away_o dissension_n brawl_n and_o scandal_n commune_v with_o god_n alone_o in_o his_o holy_a temple_n have_v no_o thought_n of_o the_o world_n say_v to_o father_n and_o mother_n i_o know_v you_o not_o and_o not_o acknowledge_v their_o own_o son_n without_o these_o the_o priest_n have_v not_o the_o name_n not_o the_o beginning_n not_o the_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o add_v sacerdotibus_fw-la etiam_fw-la propter_fw-la praesumptionem_fw-la non_fw-la licet_fw-la de_fw-fr mensa_fw-la domini_fw-la calicem_fw-la tollere_fw-la nisi_fw-la eye_n traditus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la à_fw-la diaconis_fw-la levitae_n componunt_fw-la mensam_fw-la domini_fw-la levitae_n sacerdotibus_fw-la cum_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la benedicunt_fw-la assistunt_fw-la levitae_n ante_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la orant_fw-la ut_fw-la aures_fw-la habeamus_fw-la ad_fw-la dominum_fw-la diaconus_fw-la acclamat_fw-la that_o be_v even_o the_o priest_n themselves_o for_o the_o avoid_v of_o presumption_n must_v not_o take_v the_o holy_a cup_n from_o off_o the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n unless_o it_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o by_o the_o deacon_n the_o deacon_n or_o levite_n prepare_v the_o table_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o make_v all_o thing_n ready_a on_o the_o same_o the_o levite_n assist_v the_o priest_n when_o they_o bless_v and_o sanctify_v the_o sacramental_a element_n the_o levite_n pray_v before_o the_o priest_n the_o deacon_n cry_v out_o aloud_o unto_o we_o to_o open_v our_o ear_n and_o
to_o listen_v and_o hear_v what_o the_o lord_n will_v speak_v unto_o us._n great_a and_o glorious_a be_v these_o dignity_n of_o the_o deacon_n yet_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n make_v they_o 39_o minister_n not_o of_o the_o bishop_n alone_o but_o of_o the_o presbyter_n also_o so_o that_o they_o may_v not_o sit_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o when_o some_o go_v about_o to_o prefer_v they_o before_o presbyter_n hierome_n with_o great_a violence_n oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o same_o say_v euagrium_n quid_fw-la patitur_fw-la mensarum_fw-la &_o viduarum_fw-la minister_n ut_fw-la supra_fw-la eos_fw-la se_fw-la tumidus_fw-la efferat_fw-la ad_fw-la quorum_fw-la preces_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la sanguisque_fw-la conficitur_fw-la that_o be_v what_o passion_n be_v this_o that_o thus_o transport_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o table_n and_o widow_n that_o swell_v in_o pride_n he_o shall_v lift_v up_o himself_o above_o they_o at_o who_o prayer_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v consecrate_v and_o object_v to_o himself_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n where_o a_o presbyter_n be_v ordain_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o deacon_n he_o passionate_o break_v into_o these_o word_n quid_fw-la mihi_fw-la proffer_n unius_fw-la vrbis_fw-la consuetudinem_fw-la diaconos_fw-la paucitas_fw-la honorabiles_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la turba_fw-la contemptibiles_fw-la facit_fw-la caeterum_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la romae_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la sedent_fw-la &_o stant_fw-la diaconi_fw-la licet_fw-la paulatim_fw-la increbresentibus_fw-la vitijs_fw-la inter_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la absente_a episcopo_fw-la sedere_fw-la diaconum_fw-la viderim_fw-la that_o be_v why_o do_v thou_o urge_v i_o with_o the_o custom_n of_o one_o city_n the_o fewness_n of_o deacon_n make_v they_o honourable_a and_o the_o number_n of_o presbyter_n make_v they_o to_o be_v less_o esteem_v yet_o even_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n presbyter_n do_v sit_v and_o deacon_n stand_v although_o thing_n grow_v worse_a and_o worse_o by_o degree_n and_o many_o thing_n grow_v out_o of_o order_n i_o have_v see_v a_o deacon_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o bishop_n sit_v among_o the_o presbyter_n out_o of_o the_o society_n and_o company_n of_o the_o deacon_n in_o each_o church_n there_o be_v one_o choose_v who_o not_o only_o be_v to_o perform_v the_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o deacon_n office_n but_o also_o to_o prescribe_v unto_o other_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v the_o institution_n of_o these_o be_v not_o new_o but_o very_o ancient_a as_o it_o appear_v by_o monachus_fw-la hierome_n who_o urge_v the_o necessity_n of_o order_n and_o government_n show_v that_o the_o herd_n of_o cattle_n have_v their_o leader_n which_o they_o follow_v that_o bee_n have_v their_o king_n that_o the_o crane_n fly_v after_o one_o that_o lead_v they_o the_o way_n that_o there_o be_v one_o emperor_n and_o one_o judge_n of_o each_o province_n that_o rome_n can_v not_o have_v two_o brethren_n to_o reign_v in_o she_o as_o king_n but_o be_v dedicate_v in_o parricide_n that_o ●…sau_n and_o jacob_n be_v at_o war_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o rebeccah_n that_o every_o church_n have_v her_o bishop_n every_o company_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n their_o arch-presbyte_a and_o archdeacon_n be_v these_o chief_a deacon_n or_o archdeacon_n be_v in_o process_n of_o time_n notwithstanding_o all_o canon_n to_o the_o contrary_a and_o the_o violent_a opposition_n of_o hierome_n and_o other_o worthy_n of_o those_o time_n lift_v up_o not_o only_o above_o the_o presbyter_n but_o the_o archpresbyters_a also_o the_o reason_n of_o which_o their_o advancement_n be_v first_o because_o the_o number_n of_o presbyter_n make_v they_o little_o esteem_v and_o the_o paucity_n and_o fewness_n of_o deacon_n make_v they_o honourable_a as_o i_o note_v before_o out_o of_o hierome_n second_o because_o they_o be_v busy_v about_o money-matter_n and_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n which_o kind_n of_o employment_n be_v usual_o much_o set_v by_o three_o because_o be_v minister_n unto_o the_o bishop_n they_o be_v use_v by_o he_o for_o the_o view_n of_o such_o part_n of_o his_o diocese_n as_o he_o can_v not_o convenient_o come_v unto_o himself_o the_o dispatch_n of_o thing_n for_o he_o and_o in_o the_o end_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o lesser_a and_o small_a fault_n which_o upon_o such_o view_n they_o shall_v find_v whereupon_o at_o the_o last_o they_o obtain_v a_o kind_n of_o jurisdiction_n &_o power_n of_o correction_n by_o prescription_n &_o custom_n whereof_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v more_o hereafter_o thus_o have_v we_o speak_v of_o the_o inferior_a degree_n of_o ministry_n by_o which_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o ascend_v to_o the_o high_a be_v train_v up_o for_o a_o certain_a space_n in_o the_o low_a that_o they_o may_v thereby_o be_v fit_v for_o the_o high_a according_a to_o that_o of_o hierome_n touch_v nepotian_n heliodorum_n fit_a clericus_fw-la &_o per_fw-la solitos_fw-la gradus_fw-la presbyter_n ordinatur_fw-la that_o be_v he_o be_v make_v a_o clergyman_n and_o pass_v through_o the_o ordinary_a degree_n he_o be_v ordain_v a_o presbyter_n chap._n 26._o of_o the_o order_n and_o degree_n of_o they_o that_o be_v trust_v with_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o the_o government_n of_o god_n people_n and_o particular_o of_o lay-elder_n false_o by_o some_o suppose_a to_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o speak_v of_o they_o that_o be_v trust_v with_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o the_o government_n of_o god_n people_n comprehend_v under_o one_o common_a name_n of_o presbyter_n that_o be_v fatherly_a guide_n of_o god_n church_n and_o people_n touch_v these_o presbyter_n or_o fatherly_a guide_n of_o god_n church_n some_o in_o our_o time_n have_v a_o new_a and_o strange_a conceit_n make_v they_o to_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n whereof_o some_o have_v charge_n of_o government_n only_o and_o some_o together_o therewith_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n the_o one_o sort_n layman_n and_o the_o other_o clergyman_n the_o one_o sort_n govern_v only_o &_o the_o other_o sort_n preach_v teach_v minister_a sacrament_n and_o govern_v also_o touch_v these_o new_o suppose_v govern_v elder_n that_o be_v not_o miinister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n i_o will_v first_o set_v down_o the_o reason_n that_o move_v we_o to_o think_v there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o in_o the_o church_n and_o second_o i_o will_v show_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o reason_n that_o be_v induce_v to_o think_v there_o be_v the_o first_o reason_n that_o move_v we_o to_o think_v there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o be_v because_o bishop_n presbyter_n that_o preach_v and_o minister_v sacrament_n and_o deacon_n that_o assist_v they_o howsoever_o they_o much_o degenerate_v in_o late_a time_n yet_o all_o still_o remain_v in_o all_o christian_a church_n throughout_o the_o world_n though_o in_o many_o thing_n exceed_o different_a as_o greek_a latin_a aethiopian_a and_o armenian_a in_o their_o name_n and_o office_n also_o in_o some_o sort_n but_o of_o these_o lay-elder_n there_o be_v no_o footstep_n to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o be_v not_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n whereas_o there_o will_v have_v be_v some_o remain_v of_o these_o as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o other_o have_v they_o ever_o have_v any_o institution_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o the_o other_o have_v our_o second_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o s._n paul_n prescribe_v timothy_n how_o he_o shall_v establish_v 3._o the_o church_n and_o appoint_v her_o pastor_n and_o show_v who_o shall_v be_v bishop_n and_o minister_n who_o deacon_n yea_o who_o widow_n pass_v immediate_o from_o describe_v the_o quality_n of_o such_o as_o be_v to_o be_v bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n to_o the_o deacon_n omit_v these_o lay-elder_n that_o be_v suppose_v to_o lie_v in_o the_o midst_n between_o they_o no_o way_n describe_v unto_o we_o of_o what_o quality_n they_o must_v be_v which_o in_o reason_n he_o neither_o might_n nor_o will_v have_v omit_v if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o such_o our_o three_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n bound_v the_o government_n of_o such_o governor_n nor_o give_v any_o direction_n how_o far_o they_o may_v go_v in_o the_o same_o and_o where_o they_o must_v stay_v lest_o they_o meddle_v with_o that_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o man_n shall_v be_v leave_v to_o a_o most_o dangerous_a uncertainty_n in_o a_o office_n and_o employment_n of_o so_o great_a consequence_n either_o of_o not_o do_v that_o their_o office_n and_o place_n require_v or_o presume_v beyond_o that_o they_o shall_v which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v conceive_v see_v christ_n our_o gracious_a saviour_n by_o himself_o or_o his_o apostle_n
&_o authority_n so_o to_o do_v which_o kind_n of_o reason_v i_o think_v the_o reader_n will_v not_o much_o like_a of_o touch_v athanasius_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n paul_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o marcellus_n bishop_n of_o ancyra_n depose_v by_o the_o oriental_a synod_n their_o complaint_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n of_o the_o wrong_n do_v unto_o they_o how_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o western_a bishop_n fight_v to_o relieve_v they_o with_o how_o ill_a success_n and_o how_o little_a this_o instance_n serve_v to_o prove_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n i_o have_v show_v 35._o before_o as_o likewise_o theodoret_n desire_v leo_n with_o his_o western_a synod_n to_o take_v knowledge_n of_o his_o cause_n so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a brag_n of_o bellarmine_n that_o to_o these_o and_o the_o like_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n nothing_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v answer_v chap._n 38._o of_o the_o weakness_n of_o such_o proof_n of_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o pope_n as_o be_v take_v from_o their_o law_n censure_n dispensation_n and_o the_o vicegerent_n they_o have_v in_o place_n far_o remote_a from_o they_o have_v examine_v the_o pretend_a proof_n of_o the_o illimited_a universality_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n take_v from_o the_o power_n they_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v exercise_v in_o former_a time_n over_o other_o bishop_n by_o confirm_v depose_v or_o restore_v they_o let_v we_o come_v to_o their_o law_n dispensation_n &_o censure_n &_o see_v if_o from_o thence_o any_o thing_n may_v be_v conclude_v if_o they_o can_v as_o strong_o prove_v as_o they_o confident_o endertake_v that_o pope_n in_o ancient_a time_n make_v law_n to_o bind_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n dispense_v with_o such_o as_o be_v make_v by_o general_a counsel_n &_o censure_v all_o man_n as_o subject_n to_o they_o of_o necessity_n we_o must_v be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o fullness_n of_o all_o power_n to_o rest_v in_o the_o roman_a bishop_n but_o their_o proof_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o make_v we_o believe_v any_o such_o thing_n for_o first_o touch_v the_o decree_n of_o pope_n they_o do_v not_o bind_v the_o whole_a christian_a church_n but_o the_o western_a province_n only_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o second_o they_o be_v not_o make_v by_o they_o without_o the_o consent_n and_o joint_a concurrence_n of_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n assemble_v in_o synod_n and_o sit_v with_o they_o as_o their_o fellow_n judge_n with_o equal_a power_n of_o define_v and_o determine_v thing_n concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o 88_o gregory_n the_o first_o who_o sit_v in_o council_n with_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o deacon_n and_o inferior_a clergyman_n stand_v before_o they_o make_v decree_n and_o confirm_v they_o by_o their_o subscription_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o presbyter_n also_o who_o sit_v in_o council_n with_o they_o subscribe_v in_o the_o very_a same_o sort_n that_o gregory_n do_v and_o of_o decree_n in_o such_o sort_n make_v leo_n speak_v when_o he_o 1._o require_v the_o bishop_n of_o campania_n picene_a &_o thuscia_n to_o keep_v and_o observe_v the_o decretal_a constitution_n of_o innocentius_n and_o all_o other_o his_o predecessor_n which_o they_o have_v ordain_v as_o well_o touch_v ecclesiastical_a order_n as_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o canon_n or_o otherwise_o to_o look_v for_o no_o favour_n or_o pardon_n and_o in_o the_o very_a same_o sort_n be_v the_o word_n of_o 19_o hilarius_n to_o be_v understand_v when_o he_o say_v that_o no_o man_n may_v violate_v either_o the_o divine_a constitution_n or_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v without_o danger_n of_o lose_v his_o place_n for_o this_o he_o speak_v sit_v as_o precedent_n in_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n assemble_v at_o rome_n of_o thing_n decree_v by_o synod_n of_o bishop_n wherein_o his_o predecessor_n be_v precedent_n and_o moderatour_n as_o he_o be_v now_o but_o not_o absolute_a commander_n but_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o ibid._n pope_n anastasius_n the_o young_a in_o his_o epistle_n to_o anastasius_n the_o emperor_n will_v he_o not_o to_o resist_v the_o apostolical_a precept_n but_o obedient_o to_o perform_v what_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o apostolical_a authority_n shall_v be_v prescribe_v unto_o he_o if_o he_o desire_v to_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o same_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n which_o be_v his_o head_n therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o command_v and_o give_v law_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o consequent_o have_v a_o absolute_a supreme_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n sure_o this_o allegation_n of_o the_o cardinal_n be_v like_o the_o rest_n for_o anastasius_n do_v not_o speak_v in_o any_o such_o peremptory_a and_o threaten_a manner_n to_o the_o emperor_n but_o acknowledge_v his_o breast_n to_o be_v a_o sanctuary_n of_o happiness_n and_o that_o he_o be_v god_n vicar_n on_o earth_n tell_v he_o in_o modest_a and_o humble_a sort_n that_o he_o hope_v he_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o insolency_n of_o those_o of_o constantinople_n proud_o to_o resist_v against_o the_o evangelicall_n and_o apostolical_a precept_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o acatius_n but_o that_o he_o will_v force_v they_o to_o perform_v and_o do_v what_o be_v fit_a and_o in_o like_a humble_a sort_n beseech_v he_o when_o he_o shall_v understand_v the_o cause_n of_o they_o of_o alexandria_n to_o force_v they_o to_o return_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o last_o instance_n of_o the_o pope_n law-giving_a power_n bring_v by_o bellarmine_n be_v the_o privilege_n grant_v to_o the_o monastery_n of_o saint_n medardus_n by_o greg._n gregory_n the_o first_o in_o the_o end_n whereof_o we_o find_v these_o word_n whatsoever_o king_n bishop_n judge_n or_o secular_a person_n shall_v violate_v the_o decree_n of_o this_o apostolical_a authority_n and_o our_o commandment_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o their_o honour_n drive_v from_o the_o society_n of_o christian_n put_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o subject_v to_o anathema_n and_o all_o the_o woeful_a curse_n that_o infidel_n &_o heretic_n have_v be_v subject_a to_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o this_o present_a time_n a_o strong_a confirmation_n of_o the_o privilege_n grant_v be_v find_v in_o these_o word_n but_o a_o weak_a confirmation_n of_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n for_o the_o privilege_n be_v grant_v and_o confirm_v in_o this_o sort_n not_o by_o gregory_n alone_o out_o of_o the_o fullness_n of_o his_o power_n but_o by_o the_o consent_a voice_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o france_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o senate_n of_o rome_n by_o theodoricus_n the_o king_n and_o brunichildis_n the_o queen_n so_o that_o from_o hence_o no_o proof_n possible_o can_v be_v draw_v of_o the_o pope_n absolute_a power_n of_o make_v law_n by_o himself_o alone_o to_o bind_v any_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n much_o less_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n wherefore_o let_v we_o pass_v from_o the_o pope_n power_n of_o make_v law_n to_o see_v by_o what_o right_a they_o claim_v authority_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o general_n counsel_n the_o first_o that_o be_v allege_v to_o have_v dispense_v with_o the_o canon_n of_o counsel_n be_v 1_o gelasius_n but_o this_o allegation_n be_v idle_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o first_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o by_o dispense_n he_o seek_v to_o free_v any_o from_o the_o necessity_n of_o do_v that_o the_o strictness_n of_o the_o canon_n require_v but_o those_o only_a that_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o as_o patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n and_o second_o he_o do_v not_o dispense_v but_o upon_o very_o urgent_a cause_n and_o drive_v by_o necessity_n so_o to_o do_v and_o yet_o not_o of_o himself_o alone_o but_o with_o the_o concurrence_n of_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n assemble_v in_o synod_n the_o other_o instance_n that_o be_v bring_v of_o the_o dispensation_n of_o 31._o gregory_n the_o first_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o ill_a conscience_n of_o they_o that_o bring_v they_o for_o gregory_n do_v not_o dispense_v with_o the_o english_a to_o marry_v within_o the_o degree_n prohibit_v as_o the_o cardinal_n untrue_o report_v but_o only_o advise_v austin_n not_o to_o put_v they_o that_o be_v new_o convert_v from_o such_o wife_n as_o they_o have_v marry_v within_o some_o of_o the_o degree_n prohibit_v in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o infidelity_n lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o punish_v they_o for_o fault_n commit_v in_o the_o day_n of_o their_o ignorance_n and_o to_o discourage_v other_o from_o become_v christian_n neither_o
chiefe-fathers_n of_o israel_n &_o they_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o all_o the_o congregation_n make_v a_o covenant_n with_o the_o king_n &_o say_v the_o king_n son_n must_v reign_v as_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v of_o the_o son_n of_o david_n hereupon_o the_o king_n be_v proclaim_v athaliah_n be_v slay_v the_o house_n of_o baal_n destroy_v &_o the_o altar_n and_o idol_n that_o be_v in_o it_o break_v down_o in_o all_o this_o narration_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o make_v for_o the_o chief_a priest_n power_n of_o depose_v lawful_a king_n if_o they_o become_v heretic_n for_o first_o athaliah_n be_v a_o usurper_n &_o no_o lawful_a queen_n second_o here_o be_v nothing_o do_v by_o jehoiada_n alone_o but_o by_o he_o and_o the_o captain_n of_o hundreth_n and_o the_o chief_a father_n of_o israel_n that_o enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o he_o three_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o high_a priest_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o christ._n for_o before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n the_o high_a priest_n even_o in_o the_o manage_n of_o the_o weighty_a civil_a affair_n and_o in_o judgement_n of_o life_n and_o death_n sit_v in_o the_o council_n of_o state_n as_o the_o second_o person_n next_o unto_o the_o king_n by_o god_n own_o appointment_n whereas_o our_o adversary_n dare_v not_o claim_v any_o such_o thing_n for_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvel_v at_o if_o the_o high_a priest_n be_v the_o second_o person_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o judah_n by_o god_n own_o appointment_n and_o the_o uncle_n and_o protector_n of_o the_o young_a king_n who_o his_o wife_n have_v save_v from_o destruction_n be_v the_o first_o mover_n for_o the_o bring_n of_o he_o to_o his_o right_n and_o when_o thing_n be_v resolve_v on_o by_o common_a consent_n take_v on_o he_o not_o only_o to_o command_v and_o direct_v the_o priest_n and_o levite_n but_o the_o captain_n &_o soldier_n also_o for_o the_o establish_n of_o their_o king_n &_o the_o suppress_n of_o a_o bloody_a tyrant_n and_o usurper_n for_o all_o this_o may_v be_v do_v by_o jehoiada_n as_o a_o chief_a man_n in_o that_o state_n and_o yet_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o far_o from_o obtain_v that_o he_o claim_v which_o be_v to_o depose_v lawful_a king_n for_o abuse_v their_o authority_n that_o he_o may_v not_o presume_v to_o do_v all_o that_o the_o high_a priest_n lawful_o do_v and_o may_v do_v as_o not_o have_v so_o great_a preeminence_n from_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o matter_n of_o civil_a state_n in_o any_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v by_o god_n own_o appointment_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o judah_n &_o israel_n in_o the_o old_a law_n say_v 10._o ocean_n the_o high_a priest_n meddle_v in_o matter_n of_o war_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o life_n and_o death_n &_o the_o loss_n of_o member_n &_o vengeance_n of_o blood_n &_o it_o beseem_v he_o well_o so_o to_o do_v but_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a law_n may_v not_o meddle_v with_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n wherefore_o from_o the_o power_n &_o dominion_n which_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o old_a law_n have_v it_o can_v be_v conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v any_o power_n in_o temporal_a matter_n the_o five_o example_n be_v of_o ambrose_n repel_v theodosius_n the_o emperor_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o bloody_a and_o horrible_a murder_n that_o be_v commit_v at_o thessalonica_n by_o his_o commandment_n the_o story_n be_v this_o 17._o the_o coachman_n of_o borherica_fw-la the_o captain_n of_o the_o soldier_n in_o that_o town_n for_o some_o fault_n be_v commit_v to_o prison_n now_o when_o the_o solemn_a horse-race_n and_o sport_v fight_n of_o horseman_n approach_v the_o people_n of_o thessalonica_n desire_v to_o have_v he_o set_v at_o liberty_n as_o one_o of_o who_o there_o will_v be_v great_a use_n in_o those_o ensue_a solemn_a sport_n which_o be_v deny_v the_o city_n be_v in_o a_o uproar_n and_o botherica_fw-la and_o certain_a other_o of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v stone_v to_o death_n and_o most_o despiteful_o use_v theodosius_n the_o emperor_n hear_v of_o this_o outrage_n be_v exceed_o move_v and_o command_v a_o certain_a number_n to_o be_v put_v to_o the_o sword_n without_o all_o judicial_a form_n of_o proceed_v or_o put_v difference_n between_o offender_n and_o such_o as_o be_v innocent_a so_o that_o seven_o thousand_o perish_v by_o the_o sword_n and_o among_o they_o many_o stranger_n that_o be_v come_v into_o the_o city_n upon_o diverse_a occasion_n that_o have_v no_o part_n in_o the_o outrage_n for_o which_o theodosius_n be_v so_o sore_o displease_v be_v most_o cruel_o and_o unjust_o slay_v saint_n ambrose_n understand_v of_o this_o violent_a and_o unjust_a proceed_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o next_o time_n he_o come_v to_o milan_n and_o be_v come_v to_o the_o church_n after_o his_o wont_a manner_n meet_v he_o at_o the_o door_n and_o stay_v he_o from_o enter_v with_o this_o speech_n thou_o seem_v not_o to_o know_v o_o emperor_n what_o horrible_a and_o bloody_a murder_n have_v be_v commit_v by_o thou_o neither_o do_v thou_o bethink_v thyself_o now_o thy_o rage_n be_v past_a to_o what_o extremity_n thy_o fury_n carry_v thou_o perhaps_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o imperial_a power_n will_v not_o let_v thou_o take_v notice_n of_o any_o fault_n &_o thy_o greatness_n repell_v all_o check_n of_o reason_n control_v thou_o but_o thou_o shall_v know_v the_o frailty_n of_o man_n nature_n and_o that_o the_o dust_n be_v that_o beginning_n whence_o we_o be_v take_v and_o and_o to_o which_o we_o must_v return_v let_v not_o therefore_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o purple_a robe_n make_v thou_o forget_v the_o weakness_n of_o that_o body_n of_o flesh_n that_o be_v cover_v with_o they_o thy_o subject_n o_o emperor_n be_v in_o nature_n like_o thou_o and_o in_o service_n thy_o fellow_n for_o there_o be_v one_o lord_n and_o commander_n over_o all_o the_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n wherefore_o with_o what_o eye_n will_v thou_o behold_v his_o temple_n or_o with_o what_o foot_n will_v thou_o tread_v on_o the_o sacred_a pavement_n thereof_o will_v thou_o lift_v up_o to_o he_o those_o hand_n from_o which_o the_o blood_n yet_o drop_v will_v thou_o receive_v with_o they_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o will_v thou_o presume_v to_o put_v to_o thy_o mouth_n the_o cup_n replenish_v with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o christ_n which_o have_v shed_v so_o much_o innocent_a blood_n by_o the_o word_n of_o thy_o mouth_n utter_v the_o passion_n of_o thy_o furious_a mind_n depart_v therefore_o add_v not_o this_o iniquity_n to_o the_o rest_n and_o decline_v not_o those_o band_n which_o god_n above_o approve_v with_o these_o speech_n the_o emperor_n be_v much_o move_v and_o know_v the_o distinct_a duty_n both_o of_o emperor_n and_o bishop_n for_o that_o he_o have_v be_v train_v up_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n return_v to_o the_o court_n with_o tear_n &_o sigh_n a_o long_a time_n after_o for_o eight_o month_n be_v first_o pass_v the_o solemn_a feast_n of_o the_o nativity_n of_o christ_n approach_v and_o all_o prepare_v themselves_o to_o solemnize_v the_o same_o with_o triumphant_a joy_n but_o the_o emperor_n sit_v in_o the_o court_n lament_v &_o pour_v out_o river_n of_o tear_n which_o when_o ruffinus_n master_n of_o the_o palace_n perceive_v he_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o ask_v the_o cause_n of_o his_o weep_n to_o who_o weep_v more_o bitter_o than_o before_o he_o say_v o_o ruffinus_n thou_o make_v but_o a_o sport_n of_o these_o thing_n for_o thou_o be_v touch_v with_o no_o sense_n of_o those_o evil_n wherewith_o i_o be_o afflict_v but_o the_o consideration_n of_o my_o calamity_n make_v i_o sigh_v and_o lament_v for_o that_o whereas_o the_o door_n of_o god_n temple_n be_v open_a to_o slave_n and_o beggar_n and_o they_o go_v free_o into_o the_o same_o to_o make_v prayer_n unto_o their_o lord_n they_o be_v shut_v against_o i_o and_o which_o be_v yet_o worse_o the_o gate_n of_o heaven_n be_v shut_v against_o i_o also_o for_o i_o can_v forget_v the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o say_v whosoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n to_o who_o ruffinus_n reply_v i_o will_v run_v if_o it_o please_v thou_o o_o emperor_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o entreat_v he_o to_o unloose_v these_o band_n wherewith_o he_o have_v bind_v thou_o no_o say_v the_o emperor_n it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n so_o to_o do_v for_o he_o will_v not_o be_v entreat_v i_o know_v his_o sentence_n be_v right_a and_o just_a and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o transgress_v the_o law_n of_o god_n for_o any_o respect_n of_o imperial_a power_n yet_o when_o ruffinus_n be_v
lawful_a marriage_n which_o though_o they_o prevail_v not_o at_o the_o first_o according_a to_o the_o wish_n of_o the_o wicked_a pope_n yet_o cause_v the_o most_o horrible_a confusion_n in_o the_o western_a church_n that_o ever_o have_v be_v for_o layman_n take_v occasion_n hereupon_o despise_v their_o priest_n meddle_v with_o the_o ministration_n of_o holy_a thing_n minister_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n anoint_a man_n with_o the_o filth_n which_o they_o take_v out_o of_o their_o ear_n in_o stead_n of_o oil_n do_v many_o thing_n most_o disorderly_a and_o commit_v sundry_a intolerable_a outrage_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o strange_a that_o 19_o bellarmine_n shall_v so_o forget_v himself_o as_o he_o do_v for_o whereas_o all_o story_n impute_v these_o confusion_n profanation_n and_o contempt_n of_o sacred_a thing_n to_o the_o restraint_n of_o marriage_n and_o the_o disgrace_n of_o it_o so_o hard_o be_v his_o forehead_n that_o he_o blush_v not_o to_o write_v that_o the_o marriage_n of_o minister_n will_v hinder_v the_o due_a and_o reverend_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o that_o experience_n show_v it_o in_o that_o in_o germany_n in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o when_o priest_n begin_v to_o marry_v wife_n there_o grow_v so_o great_a contempt_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o layman_n begin_v to_o administer_v they_o as_o nauclerus_fw-la and_o other_o report_n in_o which_o speech_n of_o he_o there_o be_v no_o word_n true_a for_o neither_o do_v priest_n begin_v to_o marry_v in_o gregory_n time_n but_o have_v be_v ordinary_o marry_v long_o before_o as_o suprà_fw-la nauclerus_fw-la testify_v say_v it_o be_v a_o old_a &_o confirm_a custom_n that_o be_v not_o easy_o to_o be_v alter_v which_o gregory_n seek_v to_o take_v away_o when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o forbid_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n so_o that_o they_o do_v rather_o cease_v to_o marry_v in_o his_o time_n then_o begin_v neither_o do_v any_o story_n impute_v the_o confusion_n profanation_n &_o contempt_n of_o sacrament_n and_o sacred_a thing_n in_o those_o time_n to_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n which_o be_v public_o allow_v long_o before_o without_o any_o such_o evil_a ensue_a as_o suprà_fw-la aventinus_n and_o other_o do_v testify_v but_o to_o the_o restraint_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o beginning_n as_o bellarmine_n untrue_o say_v but_o the_o end_n of_o priest_n marriage_n in_o gregory_n time_n that_o bring_v in_o so_o many_o and_o hideous_a evil_n into_o the_o christian_a world_n thus_o have_v see_v with_o how_o bad_a success_n gregory_n the_o seven_o begin_v this_o restraint_n in_o other_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n let_v we_o take_v a_o view_n of_o our_o own_o country_n and_o see_v what_o footing_n it_o have_v here_o 7._o henry_n huntingdon_n a_o ancient_a historian_n and_o of_o good_a creditte_n report_v that_o before_o the_o time_n of_o anselm_n bishop_n of_o canterbury_n the_o marriage_n of_o presbyter_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o forbid_v in_o england_n &_o that_o when_o he_o forbid_v it_o howsoever_o he_o please_v some_o for_o that_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v great_a purity_n in_o single_a life_n then_o in_o the_o state_n of_o marriage_n yet_o this_o his_o prohibition_n seem_v to_o other_o to_o be_v very_o dangerous_a fear_v that_o while_o he_o seek_v to_o bring_v man_n to_o that_o which_o be_v above_o the_o reach_n and_o without_o the_o compass_n of_o humane_a frailty_n he_o will_v occasion_v many_o grievous_a and_o scandalous_a evil_n but_o howsoever_o this_o his_o endeavour_n take_v not_o place_n by_o and_o by_o for_o the_o same_o author_n report_v that_o after_o that_o time_n one_o john_n cremensis_n a_o cardinal_n come_v into_o england_n and_o go_v about_o to_o restrain_v the_o marriage_n of_o churchman_n so_o that_o it_o appear_v that_o anselm_n have_v effect_v nothing_o this_o worthy_a cardinal_n as_o he_o report_v hold_v a_o synod_n at_o london_n and_o in_o the_o same_o make_v a_o vehement_a and_o bitter_a speech_n against_o the_o marriage_n of_o presbyter_n ask_v if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o impure_a and_o unfitting_a thing_n for_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n to_o rise_v up_o from_o the_o side_n of_o a_o harlot_n for_o so_o it_o please_v he_o to_o term_v the_o lawful_a wife_n of_o churchman_n and_o to_o go_v to_o the_o altar_n to_o consecrate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n but_o see_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n say_v huntingdon_n the_o impure_a cardinal_n that_o have_v thus_o inveigh_v against_o marriage_n the_o night_n follow_v be_v take_v in_o bed_n with_o a_o harlot_n though_o he_o have_v say_v mass_n and_o consecrate_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n in_o the_o morning_n which_o thing_n 67._o be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o can_v not_o and_o so_o foul_a that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v to_o be_v conceal_v and_o he_o add_v that_o if_o any_o roman_a prelate_n or_o other_o dislike_v this_o his_o most_o true_a report_n he_o be_v best_a to_o take_v heed_n he_o follow_v not_o the_o example_n of_o cremensis_n lest_o the_o like_a dishonour_n come_v unto_o he_o as_o do_v unto_o cremensis_n who_o be_v at_o first_o receive_v in_o very_o glorious_a manner_n be_v in_o the_o end_n cast_v out_o with_o disgrace_n and_o who_o despise_v lawful_a marriage_n fear_v not_o to_o commit_v most_o filthy_a whoredom_n hereupon_o it_o seem_v the_o matter_n of_o restraint_n of_o presbyter_n marriage_n have_v no_o good_a success_n at_o that_o time_n which_o appear_v also_o in_o that_o 68_o after_o this_o time_n in_o a_o council_n it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o king_n &_o he_o be_v authorise_v &_o appoint_v to_o punish_v such_o presbyter_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o shall_v find_v marry_v but_o he_o notable_o deceive_v the_o pope_n agent_n that_o thus_o authorize_v he_o for_o he_o take_v money_n of_o such_o as_o be_v find_v to_o be_v marry_v and_o suffer_v they_o so_o to_o redeem_v their_o liberty_n which_o grieve_v they_o not_o a_o little_a yet_o do_v they_o in_o the_o end_n so_o far_o forth_o obtain_v their_o desire_n and_o the_o tyranny_n of_o antichrist_n so_o far_o prevail_v that_o presby_n ter_n dare_v no_o long_o be_v know_v public_o to_o be_v marry_v but_o be_v force_v to_o take_v another_o course_n for_o as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o amovendis_fw-la decree_n of_o otho_n in_o the_o time_n of_o henry_n the_o three_o many_o contract_a matrimony_n secret_o and_o when_o in_o process_n of_o time_n child_n be_v bear_v unto_o they_o for_o their_o good_a when_o they_o see_v it_o fit_a they_o will_v take_v order_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v they_o be_v marry_v and_o their_o child_n bear_v in_o marriage_n either_o by_o witness_n or_o public_a instrument_n either_o while_o they_o live_v or_o after_o their_o death_n whereby_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o howsoever_o the_o impure_a romanist_n seek_v to_o keep_v cleargyman_n from_o marry_v and_o to_o force_v they_o by_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o other_o extremity_n to_o put_v away_o their_o wife_n yet_o at_o that_o time_n they_o dare_v not_o pronounce_v their_o marriage_n void_a nor_o their_o child_n illegitimate_a for_o if_o they_o have_v these_o man_n will_v not_o so_o careful_o have_v provide_v to_o be_v able_a to_o make_v proof_n of_o their_o marriage_n for_o the_o good_a of_o their_o child_n so_o that_o though_o there_o want_v not_o instrument_n set_v a_o work_n by_o the_o pope_n some_o hundred_o of_o year_n past_a that_o seek_v to_o restrain_v the_o marriage_n of_o cleargyman_n yet_o be_v not_o their_o restraint_n like_a unto_o that_o of_o the_o romanist_n at_o this_o day_n for_o they_o do_v not_o so_o restrain_v cleargyman_n from_o marry_v or_o live_v with_o their_o wife_n as_o to_o pronounce_v their_o marriage_n to_o be_v void_a neither_o do_v they_o separate_v those_o that_o god_n have_v join_v together_o but_o if_o they_o will_v marry_v or_o continue_v with_o their_o wife_n which_o they_o have_v former_o marry_v they_o permit_v they_o so_o to_o do_v and_o only_o put_v they_o from_o the_o minstery_n presbyter_n in_o former_a time_n say_v o_o duarenus_n if_o they_o take_v wife_n in_o those_o 8._o place_n where_o marriage_n be_v forbid_v be_v put_v from_o the_o ministry_n or_o perhaps_o where_o more_o severity_n be_v use_v be_v excommunicate_v but_o their_o marriage_n be_v not_o void_v yet_o be_v it_o not_o to_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o syricius_n and_o innocentius_n speak_v very_o unreverent_o of_o the_o state_n of_o marriage_n endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o presbyter_n be_v not_o to_o be_v suffer_v to_o marry_v because_o to_o live_v in_o marriage_n be_v to_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n &_o they_o that_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n how_o absurd_a and_o inconsiderate_a this_o kind_n of_o reason_v be_v every_o man_n i_o
the_o conscience_n that_o they_o that_o whip_v themselves_o as_o some_o sectary_n among_o the_o papist_n do_v be_v to_o be_v condemn_v and_o that_o the_o patient_a endure_v of_o those_o cross_n se._n which_o god_n lay_v upon_o we_o be_v more_o acceptable_a to_o god_n than_o these_o voluntary_a chastisement_n 11._o he_o condemn_v monk_n intermeddle_v with_o secular_a or_o ecclesiastical_a business_n the_o superfluous_a pomp_n and_o princely_a state_n of_o cardinal_n and_o bishop_n make_v they_o forget_v that_o they_o be_v man_n that_o one_o man_n hold_v two_o or_o three_o hundred_o ecclesiastical_a live_n that_o the_o sword_n of_o excommunication_n be_v so_o e●…ily_o drawne-out_a for_o trifle_n and_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o clergy_n use_v it_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o own_o state_n he_o dislike_v the_o pope_n appoint_v of_o stranger_n to_o take_v cure_n of_o soul_n the_o variety_n of_o picture_n and_o image_n in_o church_n occasion_v idolatry_n in_o the_o simple_a the_o number_n and_o variety_n of_o religious_a order_n the_o canonise_a of_o new_a saint_n there_o be_v too_o many_o canonize_v already_o the_o apocryphal_a scripture_n hymn_n and_o prayer_n in_o process_n of_o time_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o purpose_n or_o ignorance_n to_o the_o great_a hurt_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o the_o church_n as_o about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o the_o like_a the_o intolerable_a superstition_n in_o the_o worship_v of_o saint_n innumerable_a observation_n without_o all_o ground_n of_o reason_n vain_a credulity_n in_o believe_v thing_n concern_v the_o saint_n report_v in_o the_o uncertain_a legend_n of_o their_o life_n superstitious_a opinion_n of_o obtain_v pardon_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o say_v a_o number_n of_o pater-noster_n in_o such_o a_o church_n before_o such_o a_o image_n the_o urge_v of_o humane_a device_n more_o than_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o punish_v more_o severe_o the_o breach_n of_o their_o own_o law_n than_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o contempt_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o follow_v of_o humane_a invention_n which_o make_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v mere_o brutish_a the_o ambition_n pride_n and_o covetousness_n of_o pope_n subiect_v all_o unto_o themselves_o and_o suffer_v no_o man_n to_o say_v unto_o they_o why_o do_v you_o so_o though_o they_o overturn_v the_o course_n of_o nature_n their_o get_v all_o into_o their_o own_o hand_n by_o many_o crafty_a and_o ill_a mean_n to_o the_o overthrow_v of_o that_o order_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o thereupon_o show_v that_o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o man_n right_o wise_a and_o godly_a in_o his_o time_n that_o there_o be_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n and_o three_o several_a pretender_n challenge_v the_o papal_a chair_n it_o be_v good_a to_o take_v the_o advantage_n of_o that_o difference_n and_o never_o to_o restore_v again_o to_o any_o pope_n the_o universal_a administration_n of_o the_o temporality_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o sway_v of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o same_o but_o that_o it_o be_v best_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v bring_v back_o to_o that_o state_n they_o be_v in_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o at_o least_o in_o the_o time_n of_o sylvester_n and_o gregory_n when_o each_o prelate_n within_o his_o own_o jurisdiction_n be_v permit_v to_o govern_v such_o as_o be_v commit_v to_o he_o without_o so_o many_o reservation_n and_o exaction_n as_o have_v be_v since_o bring_v in_o these_o thing_n consider_v i_o suppose_v it_o will_v not_o seem_v so_o strange_a as_o master_n higgon_n will_v make_v it_o that_o i_o bring_v in_o john_n gerson_n as_o a_o worthy_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o ●…me_n and_o a_o man_n wish_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o same_o as_o far_o as_o it_o please_v god_n to_o enlighten_v he_o though_o he_o see_v not_o all_o which_o other_o do_v in_o the_o same_o time_n or_o before_o or_o since_o neither_o will_v it_o ever_o be_v prove_v that_o he_o will_v have_v dislike_v any_o part_n of_o the_o pre●…_n reformation_n though_o he_o condemn_v the_o inconsiderate_a position_n of_o wickliff_n and_o though_o he_o hold_v some_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o we_o now_o teach_v for_o as_o 18._o augustine_n say_v of_o cyprian_a &_o his_o colleague_n err_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o rebaptisation_n that_o if_o they_o ●…d_v be_v in_o his_o time_n when_o upon_o full_a &_o exact_a discuss_n of_o thing_n it_o be_v resolve_v otherwise_o they_o will_v have_v be_v of_o another_o mind_n so_o sure_o if_o gerson_n have_v live_v in_o latter_a time_n when_o learn_v revive_v &_o all_o sort_n of_o ancient_a author_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o covert_n of_o darkness_n into_o the_o light_n and_o view_v of_o the_o world_n he_o will_v have_v condemn_v many_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v not_o as_o many_o other_o do_v both_o before_o luther_n begin_v to_o preach_v and_o since_o who_o yet_o our_o adversary_n dare_v not_o traduce_v as_o heretic_n which_o we_o be_v induce_v to_o think_v because_o himself_o profess_v that_o the_o rent_n of_o the_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o 10._o three_o pretender_n challenge_v the_o papal_a chair_n &_o the_o calamity_n that_o follow_v the_o same_o bring_v many_o thing_n to_o light_n that_o be_v not_o know_v before_o and_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o much_o good_a and_o the_o find_v out_o of_o many_o truth_n fit_a and_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o in_o his_o book_n 19_o de_fw-fr auferibilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la in_o which_o he_o show_v many_o case_n wherein_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v depose_v limit_a restrain_v o-have_a obedience_n deny_v unto_o he_o he_o profess_v he_o have_v lay_v down_o sundry_a consideration_n touch_v this_o matter_n to_o open_v the_o way_n to_o other_o to_o enter_v far_o &_o to_o find_v out_o more_o than_o he_o do_v as_o indeed_o we_o see_v 13_o cusanus_fw-la a_o cardinal_n do_v who_o resolve_v whole_o with_o we_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v but_o only_o prime_a bishop_n among_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o be_v but_o only_o in_o order_n and_o honour_n above_o other_o yet_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o master_n higgon_n can_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_n gerson_n q_o say_v he_o believe_v 4._o transubstantiation_n approve_v the_o mass_n admit_v purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n indulgence_n &_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n therefore_o he_o can_v not_o wish_v the_o reformation_n that_o be_v now_o wrought_v by_o luther_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o transubstantiation_n i_o have_v speak_v already_o &_o show_v that_o many_o admit_v the_o word_n that_o yet_o never_o believe_v the_o thing_n which_o our_o adversary_n now_o profess_v as_o also_o what_o be_v to_o be_v think_v of_o gerson_n opinion_n touch_v this_o point_n be_v the_o scholar_n of_o cameracensis_n who_o profess_v that_o for_o any_o thing_n he_o can_v see_v transubstantiation_n proper_o so_o name_v can_v neither_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n nor_o any_o determination_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n touch_v the_o mass_n we_o must_v know_v that_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n and_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v name_v missa_fw-la miss_v or_o mass_n rom._n à_fw-la missis_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la dimissis_fw-la publica_fw-la diaconi_fw-la voce_fw-la catechumenis_fw-la iisque_fw-la qui_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la participationiidonei_fw-la non_fw-la erant_fw-la that_o be_v for_o that_o after_o the_o prayer_n and_o reading_n of_o the_o scripture_n before_o the_o consecration_n the_o catechuman_n and_o all_o such_o as_o be_v not_o to_o communicate_v be_v dismiss_v and_o send_v away_o the_o deacon_n cry_v aloud_o item_fw-la missa_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v depart_v you_o be_v dismiss_v and_o even_o in_o gregory_n time_n the_o custom_n be_v that_o the_o deacon_n after_o the_o read_n of_o the_o gospel_n pronounce_v those_o solemn_a word_n si_fw-la quis_fw-la non_fw-la communicate_v exeat_fw-la that_o be_v if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o communicate_v not_o let_v he_o go_v out_o so_o that_o the_o papist_n have_v no_o miss_n or_o mass_n if_o we_o speak_v proper_o for_o with_o they_o none_o be_v dismiss_v but_o all_o permit_v to_o be_v present_a and_o yet_o none_o communicate_v but_o the_o priest_n whereas_o the_o name_n of_o mass_n be_v give_v to_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n for_o that_o none_o be_v permit_v to_o be_v present_a but_o such_o as_o will_v communicate_v but_o to_o let_v go_v this_o advantage_n there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o that_o gerson_n allow_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n but_o i_o think_v it_o will_v hardly_o be_v prove_v that_o he_o approve_v the_o alteration_n of_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o people_n
tenthes_o and_o such_o like_a extraordinary_a tax_n upon_o the_o poor_a clergy_n and_o as_o if_o nothing_o will_v suffice_v overthrow_v all_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o other_o bishop_n bring_v all_o matter_n of_o suit_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o thereby_o also_o fill_v their_o coffer_n and_o that_o nothing_o may_v be_v want_v to_o make_v the_o church_n most_o miserable_a the_o proud_a spirit_n of_o cardinal_n the_o pope_n assessor_n their_o swell_a word_n and_o their_o insolent_a gesture_n be_v such_o that_o if_o a_o man_n will_v draw_v a_o perfect_a picture_n of_o pride_n the_o best_a way_n to_o express_v the_o same_o be_v to_o paint_v a_o cardinal_n for_o though_o these_o man_n at_o the_o first_o be_v but_o of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n yet_o in_o time_n they_o so_o enlarge_v their_o phylactery_n that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o despise_v bishop_n who_o in_o contempt_n they_o call_v episcopello_n but_o also_o patriarch_n primate_fw-la and_o archbishop_n as_o their_o inferior_n and_o almost_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v adore_v of_o they_o yea_o they_o think_v themselves_o to_o be_v king_n fellow_n neither_o do_v they_o content_v themselves_o thus_o proud_o and_o insolent_o to_o advance_v themselves_o above_o these_o under_o who_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v but_o to_o maintain_v their_o state_n the_o unmeasurable_a and_o inextricable_a gulf_n of_o their_o covetousness_n be_v such_o that_o no_o word_n can_v express_v it_o for_o they_o get_v diverse_a kind_n of_o live_n that_o do_v not_o well_o stand_v together_o they_o become_v monk_n and_o canon_n regulars_n and_o secular_o and_o under_o one_o habit_n possess_v the_o live_n of_o all_o religious_a order_n and_o profession_n not_o 2._o or_o 3._o 10._o or_o 20._o but_o a_o hundred_o 2._o hundred_o yea_o sometime_o 4._o hundred_o or_o more_o and_o those_o not_o small_a and_o poor_a but_o the_o best_a and_o fat_a that_o can_v be_v get_v gerson_n speak_v of_o the_o encroach_a of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n write_v in_o this_o sort_n obedientiae_fw-la in_o process_n of_o time_n the_o pope_n draw_v many_o thing_n to_o himself_o so_o that_o in_o the_o end_n upon_o occasion_n give_v and_o take_v which_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a here_o to_o rehearse_v almost_o the_o whole_a collation_n of_o live_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o church_n rest_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o scarce_o be_v there_o any_o prelate_n find_v that_o have_v power_n to_o give_v any_o the_o least_o benefice_n together_o with_o these_o thing_n concur_v many_o fold_n exaction_n to_o maintain_v the_o state_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n and_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o many_o fraud_n abuse_n and_o simony_n commit_v i_o refer_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o such_o as_o be_v of_o experience_n these_o thing_n i_o have_v therefore_o insist_v upon_o because_o happy_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o some_o more_o expedient_a for_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v bring_v back_o to_o their_o ancient_a estate_n wherein_o they_o be_v in_o that_o church_n that_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o much_o as_o convenient_o may_v be_v the_o great_a part_n of_o these_o jurisdiction_n be_v reject_v which_o have_v make_v the_o church_n mere_o brutish_a and_o carnal_a savour_v almost_o nothing_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n not_o of_o themselves_o but_o through_o the_o fault_n of_o such_o as_o abuse_v they_o or_o at_o the_o least_o that_o thing_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o state_n they_o be_v in_o in_o the_o time_n of_o sylvester_n or_o gregory_n when_o every_o prelate_n be_v leave_v to_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o jurisdiction_n and_o that_o part_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v commit_v to_o his_o charge_n and_o the_o pope_n hold_v that_o which_o be_v his_o own_o without_o so_o many_o reservation_n and_o so_o many_o great_a exaction_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o that_o court_n and_o head_n grow_v happy_o too_o great_a for_o the_o other_o state_n and_o part_n of_o the_o body_n to_o bear_v so_o that_o as_o there_o be_v worthy_a man_n that_o conspire_v with_o we_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n oppose_v themselves_o against_o error_n and_o false_a opinion_n so_o there_o want_v not_o that_o dislike_v and_o reprove_v the_o pope_n encroach_a tend_v to_o the_o dissolve_v of_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n and_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o form_n of_o government_n settle_v by_o christ_n which_o be_v no_o less_o hurtful_a than_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o heresy_n and_o false_a doctrine_n and_o this_o be_v that_o babylonicall_a captivity_n of_o which_o grosthead_n complain_v and_o in_o respect_n of_o these_o confusion_n and_o not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o ill_a life_n as_o master_n higgon_n untrue_o tell_v we_o bernard_n and_o other_o complain_v that_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n serve_v antichrist_n from_o the_o tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n so_o much_o complain_v of_o in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n let_v we_o come_v to_o abuse_n and_o superstitious_a observation_n remove_v by_o we_o and_o see_v whether_o they_o that_o go_v before_o we_o will_v not_o give_v testimony_n to_o that_o which_o we_o have_v do_v and_o first_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n the_o first_o abuse_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o that_o sacrament_n dislike_v by_o we_o be_v the_o mangle_n of_o it_o and_o give_v it_o to_o the_o lay_v people_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n touch_v the_o ministration_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n it_o be_v evident_a say_v 22._o cassander_n that_o all_o other_o church_n of_o the_o world_n even_o unto_o this_o day_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a or_o west_n church_n for_o more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o the_o solemn_a public_a and_o ordinary_a dispensation_n of_o this_o sacrament_n give_v both_o kind_n to_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o do_v militis_fw-la rhenanus_fw-la prove_n at_o large_a write_v upon_o tertullian_n and_o show_v that_o for_o fear_n of_o shed_v the_o chalice_n wherein_o the_o consecrate_a wine_n be_v and_o out_o of_o which_o the_o people_n be_v to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v certain_a pipe_n of_o silver_n afterward_o in_o process_n of_o time_n the_o consecrate_a bread_n be_v dip_v into_o the_o wine_n and_o so_o give_v to_o the_o people_n that_o they_o may_v receive_v the_o whole_a sacrament_n but_o this_o kind_n of_o dip_v 19_o micrologus_n say_v ordo_fw-la romanus_n condemn_v and_o therefore_o prescribe_v that_o on_o good_a friday_n when_o there_o be_v no_o consecrate_v but_o a_o receive_n of_o the_o mystical_a bread_n that_o be_v consecrate_v the_o day_n before_o they_o shall_v by_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o dip_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n into_o wine_n not_o consecrate_v consecrate_v the_o same_o that_o so_o the_o people_n may_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o whole_a communion_n which_o thing_n be_v superfluous_a if_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n keep_v from_o the_o day_n before_o and_o so_o dip_v may_v suffice_v for_o a_o full_a and_o entire_a communion_n and_o he_o show_v that_o julius_n the_o pope_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n condemn_v this_o kind_n of_o dip_v and_o command_v they_o to_o give_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n apart_o as_o christ_n do_v institute_v yet_o in_o time_n they_o proceed_v far_o and_o give_v the_o sacrament_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n to_o the_o people_n which_o custom_n when_o some_o condemn_v the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basill_n think_v good_a to_o confirm_v and_o allow_v yet_o so_o that_o the_o bohemian_n upon_o certain_a agreement_n be_v permit_v to_o have_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n and_o 56._o it_o be_v report_v of_o pope_n martin_n choose_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n that_o he_o go_v home_o from_o the_o council_n and_o minister_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n to_o diverse_a not_o of_o the_o clergy_n only_o but_o of_o the_o laity_n also_o 94._o waldensis_n also_o testify_v that_o here_o in_o england_n some_o devout_a man_n of_o the_o laity_n be_v permit_v to_o communicate_v in_o both_o kind_n in_o his_o time_n and_o 22._o cassander_n assure_v we_o that_o all_o the_o best_a man_n that_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v catholic_n especial_o such_o as_o be_v conversant_a in_o read_v the_o ancient_a writer_n and_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n upon_o great_a reason_n desire_v to_o have_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n the_o next_o abuse_n be_v that_o of_o private_a mass_n i_o have_v show_v already_o that_o the_o name_n of_o mass_n be_v give_v to_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n for_o that_o all_o non-communicants_a be_v dismiss_v and_o all_o that_o stay_v be_v to_o communicate_v and_o as_o romani_fw-la cassander_n fit_o note_v
those_o thing_n which_o every_o one_o that_o have_v salute_v the_o school_n do_v know_v the_o union_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o man_n in_o christ_n say_v cardinal_n 6._o caietan_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v vel_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la relationem_fw-la quam_fw-la significat_fw-la vel_fw-la quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la coniunctionem_fw-la in_o personâ_fw-la ad_fw-la quam_fw-la consequitur_fw-la quoniam_fw-la plus_fw-la differunt_fw-la haec_fw-la duo_fw-la quam_fw-la caelum_fw-la &_o terra_fw-la vnio_n enim_fw-la pro_fw-la relatione_fw-la est_fw-la ens_fw-la real_n creatum_fw-la vnio_n antem_fw-la pro_fw-la coniunctione_n naturae_fw-la humanae_fw-la in_o personâ_fw-la divina_fw-la cum_fw-la consistat_fw-la in_o unitate_fw-la que_fw-la est_fw-la inter_fw-la naturam_fw-la humanam_fw-la &_o personam_fw-la silij_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la in_o genere_fw-la seu_fw-la ordine_fw-la substantia_fw-la &_o non_fw-la est_fw-la aliquid_fw-la creatum_fw-la sed_fw-la creator_n quod_fw-la ex_fw-la eo_fw-la constat_fw-la quòd_fw-la vnum_fw-la non_fw-la addit_fw-la supra_fw-la ens_fw-la naturam_fw-la aliquam_fw-la &_o unumquodque_fw-la per_fw-la illudmet_fw-la per_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la ens_fw-la est_fw-la &_o vnum_fw-la etc._n etc._n bc_n per_fw-la hoc_fw-la natura_fw-la humana_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la quia_fw-la per_fw-la esse_fw-la substantiale_fw-la subsistentia_fw-la silij_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la iuncta_fw-la naturae_fw-la divinae_fw-la oportet_fw-la quod_fw-la illud_fw-la unum_fw-la esse_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la indivisae_fw-la sunt_fw-la natura_fw-la divina_fw-la &_o humana_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la sit_fw-la esse_fw-la unum_fw-la substantiale_fw-la divinum_fw-la &_o verè_fw-la sic_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la esse_fw-la subsistentiae_fw-la silij_fw-la dei_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la non_fw-la distinguuntur_fw-la ambae_fw-la naturae_fw-la substantia_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la quia_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la vnà_fw-it &_o eâdem_fw-la quip_n subsistentiâ_fw-la subsistit_fw-la filius_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o natura_fw-la divina_fw-la &_o in_fw-la natura_fw-la humana_fw-la &_o consequenter_fw-la natura_fw-la divina_fw-la et_fw-la humana_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la sunt_fw-la indivisae_fw-la in_o illa_fw-la subsistentiautrique_fw-la communi_fw-la quamvis_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la valdè_fw-la distinguantur_fw-la the_o sum_n of_o that_o he_o say_v be_v this_o for_o i_o will_v not_o stand_v exact_o to_o english_a his_o word_n that_o the_o union_n between_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o man_n in_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o that_o be_v of_o actual_a existence_n and_o subsistence_n wherein_o they_o be_v conjoin_v which_o be_v the_o same_o and_o common_a to_o they_o both_o to_o wit_n the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n communicate_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n prevent_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v any_o create_v or_o finite_a subsistence_n of_o it_o own_o be_v no_o finite_a or_o create_a thing_n but_o infinite_a and_o divine_a but_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o attain_n of_o the_o same_o in_o time_n and_o the_o relation_n of_o dependence_n the_o humane_a nature_n have_v upon_o the_o eternal_a word_n it_o be_v finite_a and_o therefore_o whereas_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o grace_n in_o christ_n the_o one_o of_o union_n the_o other_o habitual_a the_o latter_a be_v absolute_o a_o finite_a and_o create_a thing_n but_o the_o former_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o thing_n give_v which_o be_v the_o personal_a subsistence_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n bestow_v upon_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v infinite_a though_o the_o passive_a mutation_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n lift_v up_o to_o the_o personal_a be_v of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o the_o relation_n of_o dependence_n it_o have_v on_o it_o be_v finite_a &_o in_o the_o number_n of_o create_a thing_n from_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o may_v be_v conclude_v avoidable_o that_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o personal_a union_n and_o in_o that_o be_v of_o actual_a existence_n or_o subsistence_n which_o it_o have_v which_o be_v infinite_a and_o divine_a be_v everywhere_a as_o god_n himself_o be_v everywhere_a but_o say_v higgon_n there_o be_v a_o union_n hypostatical_a between_o the_o soul_n &_o body_n &_o all_o the_o part_n of_o it_o yet_o be_v not_o the_o foot_n or_o hand_n every_o where_o where_o the_o soul_n be_v which_o be_v whole_a &_o entire_a in_o every_o part_n because_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o head_n the_o poor_a fellow_n i_o see_v have_v yet_o learned_a but_o a_o little_a divinity_n and_o that_o make_v he_o thus_o to_o talk_v at_o random_n for_o howsoever_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v bring_v to_o express_v the_o personal_a union_n in_o christ_n yet_o it_o be_v very_o defective_a as_o 8_o bellarmine_n himself_o confess_v first_o because_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n be_v imperfect_a nature_n second_o because_o they_o concur_v to_o make_v one_o nature_n three_o because_o neither_o of_o they_o draw_v the_o other_o into_o the_o subsistence_n it_o have_v but_o both_o depend_v on_o a_o three_o subsistence_n which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o whole_a but_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n the_o eternal_a word_n subsist_v perfect_o in_o itself_o draw_v unto_o it_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n so_o that_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n have_v the_o same_o actual_a existence_n that_o the_o eternal_a word_n have_v must_v needs_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o same_o be_v whore-soev_a the_o word_n be_v but_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o each_o part_n of_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v where-soev_a the_o soul_n be_v which_o be_v entire_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o entire_o in_o every_o part_n because_o the_o body_n and_o the_o part_n of_o it_o have_v neither_o the_o same_o be_v of_o essence_n nor_o existence_n that_o the_o soul_n have_v but_o say_v higgon_n 38._o the_o property_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o personal_a union_n attribute_v to_o the_o person_n in_o concreto_fw-la &_o not_o to_o the_o humane_a nature_n in_o abstracto_fw-la so_o that_o though_o the_o man_n christ_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v everywhere_a yet_o the_o humanity_n can_v for_o answer_v to_o this_o objection_n we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o communication_n of_o property_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n the_o first_o be_v the_o attribute_v of_o the_o property_n of_o either_o nature_n to_o the_o person_n from_o which_o nature_n soever_o it_o be_v denominate_v the_o second_o be_v the_o real_a communication_n of_o the_o property_n of_o the_o deity_n to_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n not_o formal_o and_o in_o itself_o but_o in_o supposito_fw-la in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n bestow_v on_o it_o in_o which_o sense_n 56._o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o all_o power_n both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n be_v give_v to_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n non_fw-la in_o ipsa_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o supposito_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la gratiam_fw-la unionis_fw-la and_o so_o the_o divine_n of_o germany_n do_v say_v the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n be_v everywhere_a in_o the_o be_v of_o subsistence_n communicate_v to_o it_o &_o the_o man_n christ_n proper_o and_o formal_o by_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v the_o intelligent_a reader_n i_o doubt_v not_o will_v easy_o perceive_v the_o folly_n of_o silly_a higgon_n who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o very_a principle_n and_o rudiment_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n traduce_v that_o as_o a_o pseudo-theologicall_a determination_n and_o heresy_n which_o be_v the_o resolve_a determination_n of_o all_o the_o principal_a schoolman_n and_o best_a divine_n that_o ever_o treat_v distinct_o of_o the_o personal_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ._n yet_o as_o if_o all_o be_v clear_a for_o he_o and_o against_o i_o encourage_v by_o his_o good_a success_n in_o this_o particular_a he_o proceed_v to_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n persuade_v himself_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o find_v such_o and_o so_o many_o essential_a difference_n therein_o as_o neither_o i_o nor_o any_o man_n else_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o reconcile_v whereas_o notwithstanding_o if_o he_o have_v be_v so_o much_o conversant_a in_o the_o work_n of_o zanchius_n as_o he_o pretend_v he_o may_v have_v find_v in_o he_o miscellan_n a_o most_o godly_a and_o learned_a discourse_n touch_v this_o point_n wherein_o all_o that_o he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o companion_n can_v say_v be_v answer_v already_o and_o the_o divine_n of_o germany_n and_o those_o other_o in_o show_n opposite_a in_o such_o sort_n reconcile_v that_o our_o adversary_n if_o any_o thing_n will_v satisfy_v they_o may_v lay_v their_o hand_n on_o their_o mouth_n and_o be_v silent_a in_o this_o discourse_n first_o he_o show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o question_n touch_v the_o preparation_n of_o they_o that_o desire_v to_o be_v worthy_a partaker_n of_o this_o heavenly_a banquet_n neither_o concern_v the_o use_n of_o this_o bless_a sacrament_n second_o that_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v by_o such_o as_o desire_v to_o be_v